gbn241: The Long Vacation,
Charlotte M. Yonge. Sandra Laythorpe <laythorpe@tiscali.co.uk>.
1895p. 5/16/2002. ok.
This Project Gutenberg Etext
of The Long Vacation, by Charlotte M. Yonge, was prepared by Sandra Laythorpe, laythorpe@tiscali.co.uk. A web page for Charlotte M Yonge may be
found at www.menorot.com/cmyonge.htm.
How the children leave us,
and no traces
Linger of that smiling angel-band,
Gone, for ever gone, and in
their places
Weary men and anxious women stand.
ADELAIDE A. PROCTOR
If a book by an author who
must call herself a veteran should be taken up by readers of a younger
generation, they are begged to consider the first few chapters as a sort of
prologue, introduced for the sake of those of elder years, who were kind enough
to be interested in the domestic politics of the Mohuns and the Underwoods.
Continuations are
proverbially failures, and yet it is perhaps a consequence of the writer's
realization of characters that some seem as if they could not be parted with,
and must be carried on in the mind, and not only have their after-fates
described, but their minds and opinions under the modifications of advancing
years and altered circumstances.
Turner and other artists
have been known literally to see colours in absolutely different hues as they
grew older, and so no doubt it is with thinkers. The outlines may be the same, the tints are insensibly modified
and altered, and the effect thus far changed.
Thus it is with the writers
of fiction. The young write in full
sympathy with, as well as for, the young, they have a pensive satisfaction in
feeling and depicting the full pathos of a tragedy, and on the other hand they
delight in their own mirth, and fully share it with the beings of their
imagination, or they work out great questions with the unhesitating decision of
their youth.
But those who write in elder
years look on at their young people, not with inner sympathy but from the
outside. Their affections and
comprehension are with the fathers, mothers, and aunts; they dread, rather than
seek, piteous scenes, and they have learnt that there are two sides to a
question, that there are many stages in human life, and that the success or
failure of early enthusiasm leaves a good deal more yet to come.
Thus the vivid fancy passes
away, which the young are carried along with, and the older feel refreshed by;
there is still a sense of experience, and a pleasure in tracing the perspective
from another point of sight, where what was once distant has become near at
hand, the earnest of many a day-dream has been gained, and more than one ideal
has been tried, and merits and demerits have become apparent.
And thus it is hoped that
the Long Vacation may not be devoid of interest for readers who have
sympathized in early days with Beechcroft, Stoneborough, and Vale Leston, when
they were peopled with the outcome of a youthful mind, and that they may be
ready to look with interest on the perplexities and successes attending on the
matured characters in after years.
If they will feel as if they
were on a visit to friends grown older, with their children about them, and if
the young will forgive the seeing with elder eyes, and observing instead of
participating, that is all the veteran author would ask.
C. M. YONGE.
Elderfield,
January 31, 1895.
I. A CHAPTER OF RETROSPECT
II. A CHAPTER OF TWADDLE
III. DARBY
AND JOAN
IV. SLUM,
SEA, OR SEASON
V. A HAPPY SPRITE
VI. ST.
ANDREW'S ROCK
VII. THE HOPE OF VANDERKIST
VIII. THE
MOUSE-TRAP
IX. OUT BEYOND
X. NOBLESSE
OBLIGE
XI. HEROES AND HERO-WORSHIP
XII. THE
LITTLE BUTTERFLY
XIII. TWO
SIDES OF A SHIELD AGAIN
XIV. BUTTERFLY'S
NECTAR
XV. A
POOR FOREIGN WIDOW
XVI. "SEE, THE CONQUERING HERO COMES"
XVII. EXCLUDED
XVIII. THE EVIL STAR
XXX. SHOP-DRESSING
XX. FRENCH LEAVE
XXI. THE MASQUE
XXII. THE REGATTA
XXIII. ILLUMINATIONS
XXIV. COUNSELS OF PATIENCE
XXV. DESDICHADO
XXVI. THE SILENT STAR
XXVII. THE RED MANTLE
XXVIII. ROCCA MARINA
XXIX. ROWENA AND HER RIVAL
XXX. DREAMS AND NIGHTINGALES
XXXI. THE COLD SHOULDER
XXXII. THE TEST OF DAY-DREAMS
XXXIII. A MISSIONARY WEDDING
XXXIV. RIGHTED
Sorrow He gives and pain,
good store;
Toil to bear, for the neck
which bore;
For duties rendered, a duty
more;
And lessons spelled in the
painful lore
Of a war which is waged eternally.-—ANON.
"Ah! my Gerald
boy! There you are! Quite well?"
Gerald Underwood, of slight
delicate mould, with refined, transparent-looking features, and with hair and
budding moustache too fair for his large dark eyes, came bounding up the broad
stair, to the embrace of the aunt who stood at the top, a little lame lady
supported by an ivory-headed staff. Her
deep blue eyes, dark eyebrows, and sweet though piquant face were framed by the
straight crape line of widowhood, whence a soft white veil hung on her
shoulders.
"Cherie sweet! You are well? And the Vicar?"
"Getting on. How are they all at Vale Leston?"
"All right. Your mother got to church on
Easter-day." This was to Anna
Vanderkist, a young person of the plump partridge order, and fair, rosy
countenance ever ready for smiles and laughter.
"Here are no end of
flowers," as the butler brought a hamper.
"Daffodils! Oh!-—and anemones! How delicious! I must
take Clement a bunch of those dear white violets. I know where they came from," and she held them to her
lips. "Some primroses too, I
hope."
"A few; but the main
body, tied up in tight bunches like cauliflowers, I dropped at Kensington
Palace Gardens."
"A yellow primrose is
much more than a yellow primrose at present," said Mrs. Grinstead, picking
out the few spared from political purposes.
"Clement will want his button-hole, to greet Lance."
"So he is advanced to
button-holes! And Lance?"
"He is coming up for
the Press dinner, and will sleep here, to be ready for Primrose-day."
"That's prime, whatever
brings him."
"There, children, go
and do the flowers, and drink tea.
I am going to read to your uncle to keep him fresh for Lance."
"How bright she
looks," said Gerald, as Anna began collecting vases from the tables in a
drawing-room not professionally artistic, but entirely domestic, and full of
grace and charm of taste, looking over a suburban garden fresh with budding
spring to a church spire.
"The thought of Uncle
Lance has cheered them both very much."
"So the Vicar is really
recovering?"
"Since Cousin Marilda
flew at the curates, and told them that if they came near him with their
worries, they should never see a farthing of hers! And they are all well at home?
Is anything going on?"
"Chiefly defence of the
copses from primrose marauders. You
know the great agitation. They want to
set up a china clay factory on Penbeacon, and turn the Ewe, not to say the
Leston, into milk and water."
"The wretches! But they can't. It is yours."
"Not the western
quarry; but they cannot get the stream without a piece of the land which
belongs to Hodnet's farm, for which they make astounding bids; but, any way,
nothing can be done till I am of age, when the lease to Hodnet is out, except
by Act of Parliament, which is hardly worth while, considering—-"
"That you are near
twenty. But surely you won't
consent?"
"Well, I don't want to
break all your hearts, Cherie's especially, but why should all that space be
nothing but a playground for us Underwoods, instead of making work for the
million?"
"And a horrid, nasty
million it would be," retorted Anna.
"You born Yankee! Don't
worry Aunt Cherry about profaning the Ewe, just to spoil good calico with nasty
yellow dust."
"I don't want to worry
her, but there never were such groovy people as you are! I shall think it over, and make up my mind
by the time I have the power."
"I wish you had to wait
till five-and-twenty, so as to get more time and sense."
Gerald laughed, and
sauntered away. He was not Yankee,
except that he had been born at Boston.
His father was English, his mother a Hungarian singer, who had divorced
and deserted his father, the ne'er-do-weel second son of an old family. When Gerald was five years old his father
was killed, and he himself severely injured, in a raid of the Indians far west,
and he was brought home by an old friend of the family. His eldest uncle's death made him heir to
the estate, but his life was a very frail one till his thirteenth year, when he
seemed to have outgrown the shock to spine and nerves.
Much had befallen the house
of Underwood since the days when we took leave of them, still sorrowing under
the loss of the main pillar of their house, but sending forth the new founders
with good hope.
Geraldine had made her home
at St. Matthew's with her brother Clement and the little delicate orphan
Gerald; but after three years she had yielded to the persevering constancy of
Mr. Grinstead, a sculptor of considerable genius and repute, much older than
herself, who was ready and willing to be a kind uncle to her little charge, and
who introduced her to all at home or abroad that was refined, intellectual, or
beautiful.
It was in the first summer
after their marriage that he was charmed with the vivacity and musical talent
of her young sister Angela, now upon the world again. Angela had grown up as the pet and plaything of the Sisters of
St. Faith's at Dearport, which she regarded as another home, and when crushed
by grief at her eldest brother's death had hurried thither for solace. Her family thought her safe there, not realizing
how far life is from having its final crisis over at one-and-twenty. New Sisters came in, old ones went to found
fresh branches; stricter rules grew, up, and were enforced by a Superior out of
sympathy with the girl, who had always rebelled against what she thought
dictation. It was decided that she
could stay there no longer, and her brother Lancelot and his wife received her
at Marshlands with indignant sympathy for her wrongs; but neither she nor her
sister-in-law were made to suit one another.
With liberty her spirit and audacity revived, and she showed so much
attraction towards the Salvation Army, that her brother declared their music to
have been the chief deterrent from her becoming a "Hallelujah
lass." However, in a brief visit to
London, she so much pleased Mr. Grinstead that he invited her to partake in the
winter's journey to Italy. Poor man, he
little knew what he undertook. Music,
art, Roman Catholic services, and novelty conspired to intoxicate her, and her
sister was thankful to carry her off northward before she had pledged herself
to enter a convent.
Mountain air and scenery,
however, proved equally dangerous. Her
enterprises inspired the two quiet people with constant fears for her neck; but
it was worse when they fell in with a party of very Bohemian artists, whom Mr.
Grinstead knew just well enough not to be able to shake them off. The climax came when she started off with
them in costume at daybreak on an expedition to play the zither and sing at a
village fete. She came back safe and
sound, but Geraldine was already packed up to take her to Munich, where Charles
Audley and Stella now were, and to leave her under their charge before she had
driven Mr. Grinstead distracted.
There was a worse trouble at
home. Since the death of his good old
mother and of Felix Underwood, Sir Adrian Vanderkist had been rapidly going
downhill; as though he had thrown off all restraint, and as if the yearly birth
of a daughter left him the more free to waste his patrimony. Little or nothing had been heard direct from
poor Alda till Clement was summoned by a telegram from Ironbeam Park to find
his sister in the utmost danger, with a new-born son by her side, and her
husband in the paroxysms of the terrible Nemesis of indulgence in alcohol.
Sir Adrian had quarrelled
with all the family in turn except Clement, and this fact, or else that
gentleness towards a sufferer that had won on old Fulbert Underwood, led him in
a lucid interval to direct and sign a hurried will, drawn up by his steward,
leaving the Reverend Edward Clement Underwood sole guardian to his children,
and executor, together with his lawyer.
It was done without Clement's knowledge, or he would have remonstrated,
for never was there a more trying bequest than the charge which in a few days
he found laid on him.
He had of course already
made acquaintance with the little girls.
Poor children, they had hitherto led a life as dreary as was possible to
children who had each other, and fresh air and open grounds. Their mother was more and more of an
invalid, and dreaded that their father should take umbrage at the least expense
that they caused; so that they were scrupulously kept out of his way, fed,
dressed, and even educated as plainly as possible by a governess, cheap because
she was passe, and made up for her deficiencies by strictness amounting to
harshness, while they learnt to regard each new little sister's sex as a proof
of naughtiness on her part or theirs.
The first time they ever
heard a man's step in the school-room passage was in those days of undefined
sorrow, alarm, and silence after the governess had despatched the message to
the only relation whose address she knew.
The step came nearer; there was a knock, the sweet, strong voice asked,
"Are the poor little
girls here?" and the tall figure was on one knee among them, gathering as
many as he could within his loving arms. Perhaps he recollected Sister
Constance among the forlorn flock at Bexley; but these were even more desolate,
for they had no past of love and loyalty.
But with that embrace it seemed to the four elders that their worst days
were over. What mattered it to them
that they-—all eight of them-—were almost destitute? the birth of the poor
little male heir preventing the sale of the property, so terribly encumbered;
and the only available maintenance being the £5000 that Mr. Thomas Underwood
had settled securely upon their mother.
They began to know what love
and kindness meant. Kind uncles and
aunts gathered round them. Their mother
seemed to be able to live when her twin-sister hung over her, and as soon as
she could be moved, the whole party left the gloom of Ironbeam for Vale Leston,
where a house was arranged for them.
Lady Vanderkist continued a chronic invalid, watched over by her sister
Wilmet and her excellent young daughter Mary.
Robina, who had only one girl, and had not forgotten her training as a
teacher, undertook, with the assistance of Sophia, the second daughter, the
education of the little ones; and the third and fourth, Emilia and Anna, were
adopted into the childless homes of Mrs. Travis Underwood and Mrs. Grinstead,
and lived there as daughters. Business
cares of the most perplexing kind fell, however, on Clement Underwood's devoted
and unaccustomed head, and in the midst arrived a telegram from Charles Audley,
summoning him instantly to Munich.
Angela was in danger of
fulfilling her childish design of marrying a Duke, or at least a Graf. Diplomates could not choose their society,
and she had utterly disdained all restraints from "the babies," as
she chose to call Mr. and Mrs. Audley, and thus the wunderschones madchen had
fascinated the Count, an unbelieving Roman Catholic of evil repute, and had
derided their remonstrances.
Clement hurried off, but to
find the bird flown. She had come down
in the morning, white and tear-stained, and had told Stella that she could stay
no longer, kissed her, and was gone out of the house before even Charles could
be called. Stella's anxiety, almost
despair, had however been relieved just before her brother's arrival by an
electric message from Vale Leston with the words, "Angela safe at
home."
Letters followed, and told
how Robina had found her sobbing upon her brother Felix's grave. Her explanation was, that on the very night
before her proposed betrothal, she had dreamt that she was drifting down the
Ewe in the little boat Miss Ullin, and saw Felix under the willow-tree holding
out his bared arms to her. She said,
"Is that the scar of the scald?" and his only answer was the call
"Angela! Angela!" and with the voice still sounding in her ears, she
awoke, and determined instantly to obey the call, coming to her, as she felt,
from another world. If it were only
from her own conscience, still it was a cause of great thankfulness to her
family, and she soon made herself very valuable at Vale Leston in a course of
epidemics which ran through the village, and were in some cases very
severe. The doctors declared that two
of the little Vanderkists owed their lives to her unremitting care.
Her destiny seemed to be
fixed, and she went off radiant to be trained at a London hospital as a
nurse. Her faculty in that line was
undoubted. All the men in her ward were
devoted to her, and so were almost all the young doctors; but the matron did
not like her, and at the end of the three years, an act of independent
treatment of a patient caused a tremendous commotion, all the greater because
many outsiders declared that she was right.
But it almost led to a general expulsion of lady nurses.
Of course she had to retire,
and happily for her, Mother Constance was just at that time sentenced by her
rheumatism to spend the winter in a warm climate. She eagerly claimed Angela's tendance, and just at the end of the
year there came an urgent request for a Sister from England to form a
foundation in one of the new cities of Australia on the model of St. Faith's;
and thither Mother Constance proceeded, with one Sister and Angela, who had
thenceforth gone on so well and quietly that her family hoped the time for
Angela's periodical breaking out had passed.
The ensuing years had been
tranquil as to family events, though the various troubles and perplexities that
fell on Clement were endless, both those parochial and ritualistic, and those
connected with the Vanderkist affairs, where his sister did not spare him her murmurs. Fulbert's death in Australia was a blow both
to Lancelot and to him, though they had never had much hope of seeing this
brother again. He had left the proceeds
of his sheep-farm between Lancelot, Bernard, and Angela.
Thus had passed about
fourteen years since the death of Felix, when kind old Mr. Grinstead died
suddenly at a public meeting, leaving his widow well endowed, and the possessor
of her pretty home at Brompton. When,
soon after the blow, her sisters took her to the home at Vale Leston, she had
seemed oppressed by the full tide of young life overflowing there, and as if
she again felt the full force of the early sorrow in the loss that she had once
said made Vale Leston to her a desolation.
On her return to Brompton, she had still been in a passive state, as
though the taste of life had gone from her, and there was nothing to call forth
her interest or energy. The first thing
that roused her was the dangerous illness of her brother Clement, the result of
blood-poisoning during a mission week in a pestilential locality, after a long
course of family worries and overwork in his parish. Low, lingering fever had threatened every organ in turn, till in
the early days of January, a fatal time in the family, he was almost despaired
of. However, Dr. Brownlow and Lancelot
Underwood had strength of mind to run the risk, with the earnest co-operation
of Professor Tom May, of a removal to Brompton, where he immediately began to
mend, so that he was in April decidedly convalescent, though with doubts as to
a return to real health, nor had he yet gone beyond his dressing-room, since
any exertion was liable to cause fainting.
The blessing of my later
years
Was with me when a
boy.-—WORDSWORTH.
When Mrs. Grinstead, on her
nephew's arm, came into her drawing-room after dinner, she was almost as much
dismayed as pleased to find a long black figure in a capacious arm-chair by the
fire.
"You adventurous
person," she said, "how came you here?"
"I could not help it, with
the prospect of Lancey boy," he said in smiling excuse, holding out a hand
in greeting to Gerald, and thanking Anna, who brought a cushion.
"Hark! there he
is!" and Gerald and Anna sprang forward, but were only in time to open the
room door, when there was a double cry of greeting, not only of the slender,
bright-eyed, still youthful-looking uncle, but of the pleasant face of his
wife. She exclaimed as Lancelot hung
over his brother—-
"Indeed, I would not
have come but that I thought he was still in his room."
"That's a very bad
compliment, Gertrude, when I have just made my escape."
"I shall be too much
for you," said Gertrude.
"Here, children, take me off somewhere."
"To have some
dinner," said Geraldine, her hand on the bell.
"No, no, Marilda feasted
me."
"Then don't go,"
entreated Clement. "It is a treat
to look at you two sunny people."
"Let us efface
ourselves, and be seen and not heard," returned Gertrude, sitting down
between Gerald and Anna on a distant couch, whence she contemplated the
trio-—Clement, of course, with the extreme pallor, languor, and emaciation of
long illness, with a brow gaining in dignity and expression by the loss of
hair, and with a look of weary, placid enjoyment as he listened to the talk of
the other two; Lance with bright, sweet animation and cheeriness, still
young-looking, though his hair too was scantier and his musical tones subdued;
and Geraldine, pensive in eye and lip, but often sparkling up with flashes of
her inborn playfulness, and, like Clement, resting in the sunshine diffused by
Lance. This last was the editor and
proprietor of the 'Pursuivant', an important local paper, and had come up on
journalistic business as well as for the fete.
Gertrude meantime had been choosing carpets and curtains.
"For," said Lance,
with a smack of exultation, "we are actually going back to our old
quarters over the shop."
"Oh!" A responsive sound of satisfaction from
Geraldine.
"Nothing amiss?"
asked Clement.
"Far from it. We let Marshlands to great advantage, and
there are many reasons for the flitting.
I ought to be at head-quarters, and besides there are the Sundays. We are too many now for picnicking in the
class-room, or sponging on the rectory."
"And," said
Gertrude, "I dare not put his small family in competition with his
organ."
"Besides," said
Lance, "the 'Pursuivant' is more exacting, and the printing Will
Harewood's books has brought in more business—-"
"But how about
space? We could squeeze, but can
you?"
"We have devoured our
two next-door neighbours. There's for
you! You know Pratt the dentist had a
swell hall-door and staircase, which we absorb, so we shall not eat in the back
drawing-room, nor come up the flight which used to be so severe on you,
Cherry."
"I can only remember
the arms that helped me up. I have
never left off dreaming of the dear old step springing up the stair after the
day's work, and the whistle to Theodore."
"Ah, those were the
jolly old days!" returned Lance, con amore.
"Unbroken," added
Clement, in the same tone.
"Better than Vale
Leston?" asked Gertrude.
"The five years there
were, as Felix called those last hours of delight, halcyon days," said
Geraldine; "but the real home was in the rough and the smooth, the
contrivances, the achievements, the exultation at each step on the ladder, the
flashes of Edgar, the crowded holiday times-—all happier than we knew! I hope your children will care as
much."
"Vale Leston is their
present paradise," said Gertrude.
"You should see Master Felix's face at the least hope of a visit,
and even little Fulbert talks about boat and fish."
"What have you done
with the Lambs?" demanded Clement.
"They have outgrown the
old place in every direction, and have got a spick-and-span chess-board of a
villa out on the Minsterham road."
"They have not more
children than you have."
"Five Lambkins to our
four, besides Gussy and Killy," said Lance; "though A-—which is all
that appears of the great Achilles' unlucky name—-is articled to Shapcote, and
as for Gussy, or rather Mr. Tanneguy, he is my right hand."
"We thought him a nice
sort of youth when he was improving himself in London," said Clement.
"You both were very
good to him," said Lance, "and those three years were not
wasted. He is a far better sub-editor
and reporter than I was at his age, with his French wit and cleverness. The only fault I find with him is that he
longs for plate-glass and flummery instead of old Froggatt's respectable
panes."
"He has become the
London assistant, who was our bugbear," said Geraldine.
"I don't know how we
should get on without him since we made 'Pur' daily," said Lance.
"How old ambitions get
realized!" said Geraldine.
"Does his mother endure
the retail work, or has she not higher views for him?" asked Clement.
"In fact, ever since
the first Lambkin came on the stage any one would have thought those poor boys
were her steps, not good old Lamb's; whereas Felix always made a point of
noticing them. Gus was nine years old
that last time he was there, while I was ill, and he left such an impression as
to make him the hero model.-—Aye, Gus is first-rate."
"I am glad you have not
altered the old shop and office."
"Catch me! But we are enlarging the reading-room, and
the new press demands space. Then
there's a dining-room for the young men, and what do you think I've got? We (not Froggatt, Underwood, and Lamb, but
the Church Committee) have bought St. Oswald's buildings for a coffee hotel and
young men's lodging-house."
"Our own, old
house. Oh! is Edgar's Great Achilles
there still?"
"I rushed up to
see. Alas! the barbarians have papered
him out. But what do you think I've
got? The old cupboard door where all
our heights were marked on our birthdays."
"He set it up in his
office," said Gertrude. "I
think he danced round it. I know he
brought me and all the children to adore it, and showed us, just like a weather
record, where every one shot up after the measles, and where Clement got above
you, Cherry, and Lance remained a bonny shrimp."
"A great move, but it
sounds comfortable," said Clement.
"Yes; for now Lance
will get a proper luncheon, as he never has done since dear old Mrs. Froggatt
died," said Gertrude, "and he is an animal that needs to be made to
eat! Then the children want schooling
of the new-fashioned kinds."
All this had become possible
through Fulbert's legacy between his brothers and unmarried sister, resulting
in about £4000 apiece; besides which the firm had gone on prospering. Clement asked what was the present
circulation of the 'Pursuivant', and as Lance named it, exclaimed—-
"What would old
Froggatt have said, or even Felix?"
"It is his doing,"
said Lance, "the lines he traced out."
"My father says it is
the writing with a conscience," said Gertrude.
"Yes, with life,
faculty, and point, so as to hinder the conscience from being a dead
weight," added Geraldine.
"No wonder," said
Lance, "with such contributors as the Harewoods, and such a
war-correspondent as Aubrey May."
Just then the door began to
open, and a black silk personage disconsolately exclaimed—-
"Master Clement! Master Clem! Wherever is the boy gone, when he ought to be in his bed?"
"Ha, Sibby!" cried
Lance, catching both hands, and kissing the cheery, withered-apple cheeks of
the old nurse. "You see your baby
has begun to run alone."
"Ah, Master Lance,
'twas your doing. You always was the
mischief."
"No indeed, Sibby, the
long boy did it all by himself, before ever I was in the house; but I'll bring
him back again."
"May I not stay a
little longer, Sibby," said Clement, rather piteously, "to hear Lance
sing? I have been looking forward to it
all day."
"If ye'll take yer
jelly, sir," said Sibby, "as it's fainting ye'll be, and bringing our
hearts into our mouths."
So Sibby administered her
jelly, and heard histories of Lance's children, then, after exacting a promise
that Master Lance should only sing once, she withdrew, as peremptory and almost
as happy as in her once crowded nursery.
"What shall that once
be, Clem?" asked Lance.
"'Lead, kindly
Light.'"
"Is it not too
much?" he inquired, glancing towards his widowed sister.
"I want it as much as
he does," she answered fervently.
At thirty-eight Lance's
voice was, if possible, more perfect in sweetness, purity, and expression than
it had been at twenty, and never had the poem, connected with all the crises of
their joint lives, come more home to their hearts, filling them with aspiration
as well as memory.
Then Lance helped his
brother up, and was surprised, after those cheerful tones, to feel the weight
so prone and feeble, that Gerald's support on the other side was welcome. Mrs. Grinstead followed to take Gertrude to
her room and find her children's photographs.
The two young people began
to smile as soon as they were left alone.
"Did you ever see
Bexley?" asked Anna.
"Yes-—an awful hole,"
and both indulged in a merry laugh.
"My mother mentions it
with pious horror," said Anna.
"Life is much more
interesting when it is from hand to mouth," said Gerald, with a yawn. "If I went in for sentiment, which I
don't, it would be for Fiddler's Ranch; though it is now a great city called
Violinia, with everything like everything else everywhere."
"Not Uncle Lance."
"Certainly not. For a man with that splendid talent to bury
it behind a counter, mitigated by a common church organ, is as remarkable as
absurd; though he seems to thrive on it.
It is a treat to see such innocent rapture, all genuine too!"
"You worn-out old
man!" laughed Anna. "Aunt
Cherry has always said that self-abnegation is the secret of Uncle Lance's
charm."
"All very well in that
generation-—ces bons jours quand nous etions si miserables," said Gerald,
in his low, maundering voice.
"Prosperity means the lack of object."
"Does it?"
"In these days when
everything is used up."
"Not to those
two—-"
"Happy folk, never to
lose the sense of achievement!"
"Poor old man! You talk as if you were twenty years older
than Uncle Lance."
"I sometimes think I
am, and that I left my youth at Fiddler's Ranch."
Wherewith he strolled to the
piano, and began to improvise something so yearning and melancholy that Anna
was not sorry when her uncle came back and mentioned the tune the old cow died
of.
Was Gerald, the orphan of
Fiddler's Ranch, to be always the spoilt child of prosperity and the creature
of modern life, with more aspirations than he saw how to fulfil, hampered as he
was by duties, scruples, and affections?
My reason haply more
To bandy word for word and
frown for frown;
But now I see our lances are
but straws!
SHAKESPEARE.
Lancelot saw his brother's
doctors the next morning, and communicated to his wife the upshot of the
interview when they were driving to their meeting in Mrs. Grinstead's victoria,
each adorned with a big bunch of primroses.
"Two doctors! and not
Tom," said Gertrude.
"Both Brownlows. Tom knows them well, and wrote. One lives at the East-end, and is sheet
anchor to Whittingtonia. He began with
Clement, but made the case over to the cousin, the fashionable one, when we
made the great removal."
"So they
consulted?"
"And fairly see the way
out of the wood, though not by any means quit of it, poor Tina; but there's a
great deal to be thankful for," said Lance, with a long breath.
"Indeed there is!"
said the wife, with a squeeze of the hand.
"But is there any more to be feared?"
"Everything,"
Lance answered; "heart chiefly, but the lungs are not safe. He has been whirling his unfortunate machine
faster and faster, till no wonder the mainspring has all but broken down. His ideal always was working himself to
death, and only Felix could withhold him, so now he has fairly run himself
down. No rest from that tremendous
parish work, with the bothers about curates, school boards and board schools,
and the threatened ritual prosecution, which came to nothing, but worried him
almost as much as if it had gone on, besides all the trouble about poor Alda,
and the loss of Fulbert took a great deal out of him. When Somers got a living, there was no one to look after him, and
he never took warning. So when in that
Stinksmeech Mission he breathed pestiferous air and drank pestiferous water, he
was finished up. They've got typhus
down there-—a very good thing too," he added vindictively.
"I put it further back
than Mr. Somers' going," said Gertrude.
"He never was properly looked after since Cherry married. What is he to do now?"
"Just nothing. If he wishes to live or have a chance of
working again, he must go to the seaside and vegetate, attempt nothing for the
next six months, nor even think about St. Matthew's for a year, and, as they
told me afterwards, be only able to go on cautiously even then."
"How did he take
it?"
"He laid his head
against Cherry, who was standing by his chair, put an arm round her, and said,
'There!' and she gave him such a smile as I would not have missed seeing on any
account. 'Mine now,' she said. 'Best!' he said. He is too much tired and worn out to vex himself about
anything."
"Where are they to
go? Not to Ewmouth, or all the family
worries would come upon them. Alda
would give him no peace."
"Certainly not
there. Brownlow advises Rockquay. His delicate brother is a curate there, and
it agrees with him better than any other place. So I am to go and see for a house for them. It is the very best thing for Cherry."
"Indeed it is. Was not she like herself last night? Anna says she has never brightened up so
much before! I do believe that if Clement
goes on mending, the dear person will have a good time yet; nay, all the better
now that she is free to be a thorough-going Underwood again."
"You Underwooder than
Underwood!"
"Exactly! I never did like-—Yes, Lance, I am going to
have it out. I do think Clement would
have done better to let her alone."
"He did let her
alone. He told me so."
"Yes, but she let out
to me the difference between that time and the one of the first offer when dear
Felix could not keep back his delight at keeping her; whereas she could not
help seeing that she was a burthen on Clement's soul, between fear of neglecting
her and that whirl of parish work, and that St. Wulstan's Hall was wanted for
the girls' school. Besides, Wilmet
persuaded her."
"She did. But it turned out well. The old man worshipped her, and she was very
fond of him."
"Oh! very well in a way,
but you know better, Lance."
"Well, perhaps he did
not begin young enough. He was a good,
religious man, but Pro Ecclesia Dei had not been his war-cry from his youth,
and he did not understand, and thought it clerical; good, but outside his
life. Still, she was happy."
"Petting, Society, Art,
travels! I had rather have had our two
first years of tiffs than all that sort of happiness."
"Tiffs! I thought we might have gone in for the
Dunmow flitch."
"You might! Do you mean that you forget how fractious
and nasty and abominable I was, and how many headaches I gave you?"
"Only what you had to
put up with."
"You don't recollect
that first visit of my father's, when I was so frightfully cross because you
said we must ask the Lambs and Bruces to dinner? You came down in the morning white as a ghost, an owl in its
blinkers, and though I know you would rather have died than have uttered a
word, no sooner were you off than he fell upon me with, 'Mrs. Daisy, I give you
to understand that you haven't a husband made of such tough commodity as you
are used to at home, and if you worry him you will have to rue it.'"
"What an ass I must
have looked! Did I really go playing
the martyr?"
"A very smiling martyr,
pretending to be awfully jolly. I
believe I requited papa by being very cross."
"At his interfering,
eh? No wonder."
"Chiefly to conceal my
fright, but I did begin trying not to fly out as I used to do, and I was
frightened whenever I did so."
"Poor Daisy! That is why you always seemed to think every
headache your fault."
"The final effect-—I
won't say cure-—was from that book on education which said that a child should
never know a cross word or look between father and mother. So you really have forgotten how horrid I
could be?"
"Or never felt it! But to return to our muttons. I can't believe otherwise than that Cherry
liked her old man, and if their parallel lines did not meet, she never found it
out."
"That is true. She liked him and leant on him, and was
constantly pleased and amused as well as idolized, but I don't think the deep
places in her heart were stirred. Then
there were constraints. He could not
stand Angela's freaks. And his
politics-—"
"He was not so very
much advanced."
"Enough not to like the
'Pursuivant' to lie about, nor her writing for it, even about art or books; nor
did his old bones enjoy the rivers at Vale Leston. Now you will see a rebound."
"Or will she be too
tender of him to do what he disliked?"
"That will be the
test. Now she has Clement, I expect an
article will come on the first book they read together."
Lance laughed, but returned
to defend his sister.
"Indeed she was
attached to him. She was altogether
drooping and crushed at Vale Leston in the autumn."
"It was too soon. She was overdone with the multitudes, and in
fact it was more the renewal of the old sorrow than the new one. Anna tells me that when they returned there
was the same objectless depression. She
would not take up her painting again, she said it was of no use, there was no
one to care. I remember her being asked
once to do something for the Kyrle Society, and Mr. Grinstead did not like it,
but now Clement's illness has made a break, and in a new place, with him to
occupy her instead of only that dawdling boy, you will see what you shall
see!"
"Ah! Gerald!" was
the answer, in a doubtful, wistful tone, just as they arrived.
For in spite of all her
mother had taught her,
She was really remarkably
fond of the water.
JANE TAYLOR.
Mr. and Mrs. Lancelot
Underwood had not long been gone to their meeting when there ran into the
drawing-room a girl a year older than Anna, with a taller, better figure, but a
less clear complexion, namely Emilia, the adopted child of Mr. Travis
Underwood. She found Anna freshening up
the flowers, and Gerald in an arm-chair reading a weekly paper.
"I knew I should find
you," she cried, kissing Anna, while Gerald held out a finger or two
without rising. "I thought you
would not be gone primrosing."
"A perspicacity that
does you credit," said Gerald, still behind his paper.
"Are the cousins
gone?" asked Anna.
"Of course they are;
Cousin Marilda, in a bonnet like a primrose bank, is to pick up Fernan
somewhere, but I told her I was too true to my principles to let wild horses
drag me there."
"Let alone fat tame
ones," ejaculated Gerald.
"What did she
say?" asked Anna.
"Oh, she opened her
eyes, and said she never should ask any one to act against principles, but
principles in her time were for Church and State. Is Aunt Cherry in the vortex?"
"No, she is reading to
Uncle Clem, or about the house somewhere.
I don't think she would go now at least."
"Uncle Grin's memory
would forbid," muttered Gerald.
"He saw a good many things, though he was a regular old-fashioned
Whig, an Edinburgh Review man."
"You've got the
'Censor' there! Oh, let me see it. My respected cousins don't think it good for
little girls. What are you going to
do?"
"I believe the doctors
want Uncle Clem to get a long leave of absence, and that we shall go to the
seaside," replied Anna.
"Oh! then you will come
to us for the season! We reckon on
it."
"No, indeed, Emmie, I
don't see how I can. Those two are not
in the least fit to go without some one."
"But then mother is
reckoning on our having a season together.
You lost the last."
Gerald laughed a little and
hummed—-
"If I were na to marry a rich sodger lad
My friends would be dismal, my minnie be mad."
"Don't be so
disgusting, Gerald! My friends have too
much sense," cried Anna.
"But it is true enough
as regards 'my minnie,'" said Emilia.
"Well, eight daughters are
serious-—baronet's daughters!" observed Gerald in his teasing voice.
"Tocherless lasses
without even the long pedigree," laughed Anna. "Poor mother."
"The pedigree is long
enough to make her keep poor Vale Leston suitors at arm's length," mumbled
Gerald; but the sisters did not hear him, for Emilia was exclaiming—-
"I mean to be a
worker. I shall make Marilda let me
have hospital training, and either go out to Aunt Angela or have a hospital
here. Come and help me, Annie."
"I have a hospital
here," laughed Anna.
"But, Nan dear, do
come! You know such lots of
swells. You would get one into real
society if one is to have it; Lady Rotherwood, Lady Caergwent, besides all your
delightful artist friends; and that would pacify mother, and make it so much
pleasanter for me. Oh, if you knew what
the evenings are!"
"What an
inducement!"
"It would not be so if
Annie were there. We should go out, and
miss the horrid aldermanic kind of dinners; and at home, when we had played the
two old dears to sleep, as I have to do every night, while they nod over their
piquet or backgammon, we could have some fun together! Now, Annie, you would like it. You do care for good society, now don't
you?"
"I did enjoy it very
much when Aunt Cherry went with me, but—-"
"No buts, no buts. You would come to the laundry girls, and the
cooking-class, and all the rest with me, and we should not have a dreary
moment. Have you done fiddling over
those flowers?"
"Not yet; Vale Leston
flowers, you know. Besides, Aunt Cherry
can't bear them not artistic."
"Tidy is enough for
Marilda. She does them herself, or the
housekeeper; I can't waste time worrying over them."
"That's the reason they
always look like a gardener's prize bouquet at a country horticultural
show," said Gerald.
"What does it
signify? They are only a testimony to
Sir Gorgias Midas' riches. I do hate
orchids."
"I wish them on their
native rocks, poor things," said Gerald.
"But poor Fernan, you do him an injustice."
"Oh, yes, he does
quantities of good works, and so does Marilda, till I am quite sick of hearing
of them! The piles of begging letters
they get! And then they want them read
and explained, and answered sometimes."
"A means of good
works," observed Gerald.
"How would you like
it? Docketing the crumbs from Dives'
table," exclaimed Emilia.
"A clerk or secretary
could do it," said Anna.
"Of course. Now if you have finished those flowers, do
come out with me. I want to go into
Ponter's Court, and Fernan won't let me go alone."
"Have you any special
object?" said Gerald lazily, "or is it to refresh yourself with the
atmosphere?"
"That dear boy-—that
Silky-—has been taken up, and they've sent him to a reformatory."
"What a good
thing!"
"Yes, only I don't
believe he did it! It was that nasty
little Bill Nosey. I am sure that he
got hold of the lady's parcel, and stuffed it into Silky's cap."
Emilia spoke with a
vehemence that made them both laugh, and Gerald said—-
"But if he is in a
reformatory, what then? Are we to
condole with his afflicted family, or bring Bill Nosey to confess?"
"I thought I would see
about it," said Emilia vaguely.
"Well, I decline to
walk in the steps of the police as an amateur!
How about the Dicksons?"
"Drifted away no one
knows where. That's the worst of
it. Those poor things do shift about
so."
"Yes. I thought we had got hold of those boys with
the gymnasium. But work wants
regulating."
"Oh, Gerald, I am glad
you are coming. Now I am
free!" Just fancy, they had a
horrid, stupid, slow dinner-party on Easter Monday, of all the burgomasters and
great One-eyers, and would not let me go down and sing to the match-girls!"
"You had the pleasure
of a study of the follies of wealth instead of the follies of poverty."
"Oh, to hear Mrs. Brown
discourse on her troubles with her first, second, and third coachman!"
"Was the irresistible
Ferdinand Brown there?"
"Yes, indeed, with
diamond beetle studs and a fresh twist to his moustache. It has grown long enough to be waxed."
"How happy that fellow
would be if he were obliged to dig! I
should like to scatter his wardrobe over Ponter's Court."
"There, Nan, have you
finished?" as Anna swept the scattered leaves into a basket. "Are you coming?"
"I don't think I
shall. You would only talk
treason-—well-—social treason all the way, and you don't want me, and Aunt
Cherry would have to lunch alone, unless you wait till after."
"Oh no, I know a
scrumptious place for lunch," said Gerald. "You are right, Annie, one lady is quite enough on one's
hands in such regions. You have no
jewellery, Emmie?"
"Do you see any verdure
about me?" she retorted.
So when Gerald's tardy
movements had been overcome, off they started to their beloved slum, Emilia
looking as if she were setting forth for Elysium, and they were seen no more,
even when five o'clock tea was spread, and Anna making it for her Uncle Lance
and his wife, who had just returned, full of political news; and likewise Lance
said that he had picked up some intelligence for his sister. He had met General Mohun and Sir Jasper
Merrifield, both connections of the Underwoods.
General Mohun lived with his
sister at Rockstone, Sir Jasper, his brother-in-law, at Clipstone, not far off,
and they both recommended Rockquay and its bay "with as much praise,"
said Lance, "as the inhabitants ever give of a sea place."
"Very good, except for
the visitors," said Geraldine.
"Exactly so. Over-built, over-everythinged, but still
tolerable. The General lives there with
his sister, and promises to write to me about houses, and Sir Jasper in a house
a few miles off."
"He is Bernard's
father-in-law?"
"Yes," said
Gertrude; "and my brother Harry married a sister of Lady Merrifield, a
most delightful person as ever I saw.
We tell my father that if she were not out in New Zealand we should all
begin to be jealous, he is so enthusiastic about Phyllis."
"You have never told us
how Dr. May is."
"It is not easy to
persuade him that he is not as young as he was," said Gertrude.
"I should say he
was," observed Lance.
"In heart-—that's
true," said Gertrude; "but he does get tired, and goes to sleep a
good deal, but he likes to go and see his old patients, as much as they like to
have him, and Ethel is always looking after him. It is just her life now that Cocksmoor has grown so big and wants
her less. Things do settle themselves. If any one had told her twenty years ago
that Richard would have a great woollen factory living, and Cocksmoor and
Stoneborough meet, and a separate parish be made, with a disgusting paper-mill,
two churches, and a clergyman's wife-—(what's the female of whipper-snapper,
Lance?)-—who treats her as—-"
"As an extinct
volcano," murmured Lance.
"She would have thought
her heart would be broken," pursued Gertrude. "Whereas now she owns that it is the best thing, and a great
relief, for she could not attend to Cocksmoor and my father both. We want her to take a holiday, but she never
will. Once she did when Blanche and
Hector came to stay, but he was not happy, hardly well, and I don't think she
will ever leave him again."
"Mrs. Rivers is working
still in London?"
"Oh yes; I don't know
what the charities of all kinds and descriptions would do without her."
"No," said Clement
from his easy-chair. "She is a
most valuable person. She has such good
judgment."
"It has been her whole
life ever since poor George Rivers' fatal accident," said Gertrude. "I hardly remember her before she was
married, except a sense that I was naughty with her, and then she was terribly
sad. But since she gave up Abbotstoke
to young Dickie May she has been much brighter, and she can do more than any
one at Cocksmoor. She manages Cocksmoor
and London affairs in her own way, and has two houses and young Mrs. Dickie on
her hands to boot."
"How many societies is
she chairwoman of?" said Lance.
"I counted twenty-four pigeon-holes in her cabinet one day, and I
believe there was a society for each of them; but I must say she is quiet about
them."
"It is fine to see the
little hen-of-the-walk of Cocksmoor lower her crest to her!" said
Gertrude, "when Ethel has not thought it worth while to assert herself,
being conscious of being an old fogey."
"And your Bishop?"
"Norman? I do believe he is coming home next
year. I think he really would if papa
begged him, but that he—-my father, I mean-—said he would never do so; though I
believe nothing would be such happiness to him as to have Norman and Meta at
home again. You know they came home on
George's death, but then those New Somersetas went and chose him Bishop, and
there he is for good."
"For good indeed,"
said Clement; "he is a great power there."
"So are his
books," added Geraldine.
"Will Harewood sets great store by them. Ah! I hear our young
folks-—or is that a carriage?"
Emilia and Gerald came in
simultaneously with Marilda, expanded into a portly matron, as good-humoured as
ever, and better-looking than long ago.
She was already insisting on
Gerald's coming to a party of hers and bringing his violin, and only
interrupted her persuasions to greet and congratulate Clement.
Gerald, lying back on a
sofa, and looking tired, only replied in a bantering, lazy manner.
"Ah! if I asked you to
play to the chimney-sweeps," she said, "you would come fast enough,
you idle boy. And you, Annie, do you
know you are coming to me for the season when your uncle and aunt go out of
town?"
"Indeed, Cousin
Marilda, thank you, I don't know it, and I don't believe it."
"Ah, we'll see! You haven't thought of the dresses you two
are to have for the Drawing-Room from Worth's, and Lady Caergwent to present
you."
Anna shook her head
laughingly, while Gerald muttered—-
"Salmon are caught with
gay flies."
They closed round the
tea-table while Marilda sighed—-
"Alda's daughters are
not like herself."
"A different
generation," said Geraldine.
"See the Beggars
Opera," said Lance—-
"'I wonder
any man alive will ever rear a daughter,
For when she's
drest with care and cost, and made all neat and gay,
As men should
serve a cucumber, she throws herself away.'"
"Ah! your time has not
come yet, Lance. Your little girls are
at a comfortable age."
"There are different
ways of throwing oneself away," said Clement. "Perhaps each generation says it of the next."
"Emmie is not throwing
herself away, except her chances," said Marilda. "If she would only think of poor Ferdy Brown, who is as good
a fellow as ever lived!"
"Not much chance of
that," said Geraldine.
Their eyes all met as each
had glanced at the tea-table, where Emilia and Gerald were looking over a
report together, but Geraldine shook her head.
She was sure that Gerald did not think of his cousins otherwise than as
sisters, but she was by no means equally sure of Emilia, to whom he was
certainly a hero.
Anna had not heard the last
of the season. Her mother wrote to her,
and also to Geraldine, whom she piteously entreated not to let Anna lose
another chance, in the midst of her bloom, when she could get good
introductions, and Marilda would do all she could for her.
But Anna was obdurate. She should never see any one in society like
Uncle Clem. She had had a taste two
years ago, and she wished for no more.
She should see the best pictures at the studios before leaving town, and
she neither could nor would leave her uncle and aunt to themselves. So the matter remained in abeyance till the
place of sojourn had been selected and tried; and meantime Gerald spent what
remained of the Easter vacation in a little of exhibitions with Anna, a little
of slumming with Emilia, a little of society impartially with swells and
artists, and a good deal of amiable lounging and of modern reading of all
kinds. His aunt watched, enjoyed, yet
could not understand, his uncle said, that he was an undeveloped creature.
Such trifles will their
hearts engage,
A shell, a flower, a feather;
If none of these, a cup of
joy
It is to be together.—-ISAAC WILLIAMS.
A retired soldier, living with
his sister in a watering-place, is apt to form to himself regular habits, of
which one of the most regular is the walking to the station in quest of his
newspaper. Here, then, it was that the
tall, grey-haired, white-moustached General Mohun beheld, emerging on the
platform, a slight figure in a grey suit, bag in hand, accompanied by a pretty
pink-cheeked, fair-haired, knicker-bockered little boy, whose air of content
and elation at being father's companion made his sapphire eyes goodly to
behold.
"Mr. Underwood! I am glad to see you."
"I thought I would run
down and look at the house you were so good as to mention for my sister, and
let this chap have a smell of the sea."
There was a contention
between General Mohun's hospitality and Lancelot's intention of leaving his bag
at the railway hotel, but the former gained the day, the more easily because
there was an assurance that the nephew who slept at Miss Mohun's for the sake
of his day-school would take little Felix Underwood under his protection, and
show him his curiosities. The boy's
eyes grew round, and he exclaimed—-
"Foolish guillemots'
eggs?"
"He is in the egg
stage," said his father, smiling.
"I won't answer for
guillemots," said the General, "but nothing seems to come amiss to
Fergus, though his chief turn is for stones."
There was a connection
between the families, Bernard Underwood, the youngest brother of Lance, having
married the elder sister of the aforesaid Fergus Merrifield. Miss Mohun, the sister who made a home for
the General, had looked out the house that Lance had come to inspect. As it was nearly half-past twelve o'clock,
the party went round by the school, where, in the rear of the other rushing
boys, came Fergus, in all the dignity of the senior form.
"Look at him,"
said the General, "those are honours one only gets once or twice in one's
life, before beginning at the bottom again."
Fergus graciously received
the introduction; and the next sound that was heard was, "Have you any
good fossils about you?" in a tone as if he doubted whether so small a boy
knew what a fossil meant; but little Felix was equal to the occasion.
"I once found a
shepherd's crown, and father said it was a fossil sea-urchin, and that they are
alive sometimes."
"Echini. Oh yes-—recent, you mean. There are lots of them here.
I don't go in for those mere
recent things," said Fergus, in a pre-Adamite tone, "but my sister
does. I can take you down to a
fisherman who has always got some."
"Father, may I? I've got my eighteenpence," asked the
boy, turning up his animated face, while Fergus, with an air of patronage,
vouched for the honesty of Jacob Green, and undertook to bring his charge back
in time for luncheon.
Lancelot Underwood had
entirely got over that sense of being in a false position which had once
rendered society distasteful to him.
Many more men of family were in the like position with himself than had
been the case when his brother had begun life; moreover, he had personally
achieved some standing and distinction through the 'Pursuivant'.
General Mohun was delighted
with his companion, whom he presented to his sister as the speedy consequence
of her recommendation. She was rather
surprised at the choice of an emissary, but her heart was won when she found
Mr. Underwood as deep in the voluntary school struggle as she could be. Her brother held up his hands, and warned
her that it was quite enough to be in the fray without going over it again, and
that the breath of parish troubles would frighten away the invalid.
"I'll promise not to
molest him," she said.
"Besides," said
Lance, "one can look at other people's parishes more philosophically than
at one's own."
He had begun to grow a
little anxious about his boy, but presently from the garden, up from the
cliff-path, the two bounded in-—little Felix with the brightest of eyes and
rosiest of cheeks, and a great ruddy, white-beaded sea-urchin held in triumph
in his hands.
"Oh, please," he
cried, "my hands are too dirty to shake; we've been digging in the
sand. It's too splendid! And they ought to have spines. When they are alive they walk on them. There's a bay! Oh, do come down and look for them."
"And pray what would
become of Aunt Cherry's house, sir?
Miss Mohun, may I take him to make his paws presentable?"
"A jolly little kid,"
pronounced Fergus, lingering before performing the same operation, "but he
has not got his mind opened to stratification, and only cares for recent
rubbish. I wish it was a half-holiday,
I would show him something!"
The General, who had a great
turn for children, and for the chase in any form, was sufficiently pleased with
little Felix's good manners and bright intelligence about bird, beast, and
fish, as to volunteer to conduct him to the region most favourable to spouting
razor-fish and ambulatory sea-urchins.
The boy turned crimson and gasped—-
"Oh, thank you!"
"Thank you
indeed," said his father, when he had been carried off to inspect Fergus's
museum in the lumber-room. "'To
see a real General out of the wars' was one great delight in coming here,
though I believe he would have been no more surprised to hear that you had been
at Agincourt than in Afghanistan. 'It's
in history,' he said with an awe-stricken voice."
When Fergus, after some
shouting, was torn from his beloved museum, Felix came down in suppressed
ecstasy, declaring it the loveliest and most delicious of places, all bones and
stones, where his father must come and see what Fergus thought was a
megatherium's tooth. The long word was
pronounced with a triumphant delicacy of utterance, amid dancing bounds of the
dainty, tightly-hosed little legs.
The General and his
companion went their way, while the other two had a more weary search,
resulting in the choice of not the most inviting of the houses, but the one
soonest available within convenient distance of church and sea. When it came to practical details, Miss
Mohun was struck by the contrast between her companion's business promptness
and the rapt, musing look she had seen when she came on him listening to the
measured cadence of the waves upon the cliffs, and the reverberations in the
hollows beneath. And when he went to
hire a piano she, albeit unmusical, was struck by what her ears told her, yet
far more by the look of reverent admiration and wonder that his touch and his
technical remarks brought out on the dealer's face.
"Has that man, a
bookseller and journalist, missed his vocation?" she said to herself. "Yet he looks too strong and happy for
that. Has he conquered something, and
been the better for it?"
He made so many inquiries
about Fergus and his school, that she began to think it must be with a view to
his own pretty boy, who came back all sea-water and ecstasy, with a store of
limpets, sea-weeds, scales, purses, and cuttle-fish's backbones for the
delectation of his sisters. Above all,
he was eloquent on the shell of a lacemaker crab, all over prickles, which he
had seen hanging in the window of a little tobacconist. He had been so much fascinated by it that
General Mohun regretted not having taken him to buy it, though it appeared to
be displayed more for ornament than for sale.
"It is a disgusting
den," added the General, "with 'Ici on parle Francais' in the window,
and people hanging about among whom I did not fancy taking the boy."
"I know the
place," said Miss Mohun.
"Strange to say, it produces rather a nice girl, under the
compulsion of the school officer. She
is plainly half a foreigner, and when Mr. Flight got up those theatricals last
winter she sung most sweetly, and showed such talent that I thought it quite
dangerous."
"I remember," said
her brother. "She was a fairy
among the clods."
The next morning, to the
amazement of Miss Mohun, who thought herself one of the earliest of risers, she
not only met the father and son at early matins, but found that they had been
out for two hours enjoying sea-side felicity, watching the boats come in, and
delighting in the beauty of the fresh mackerel.
"If they had not all
been dead!" sighed the tender-hearted little fellow. "But I've got my lacemaker for Audrey."
"'The carapace of a
pagurus,' as Fergus translated it."
Adding, "I don't know the species."
"I can find out when
father has time to let us look at the big natural history book in the
shop," said Felix. "We must
not look at it unless he turns it over, so Pearl and I are saving up to buy
it."
"For instance!"
said his father, laughing.
"Oh, I could not help
getting something for them all," pleaded the boy, "and pagurus was
not dear. At least he is, in the other
way."
"Take care, Fely-—he
won't stand caresses. I should think he
was the first crab ever so embraced."
"I wonder you got
entrance so early in the day," said Miss Mohun.
"The girl was sweeping
out the shop, and singing the morning hymn, so sweetly and truly, that it would
have attracted me anyway," said Lancelot.
"No doubt the seafaring men want 'baccy at all hours. She was much amazed at our request, and
called her mother, who came out in remarkable dishabille, and is plainly
foreign. I can't think where I have
seen such a pair of eyes-—most likely in the head of some chorus-singer, indeed
the voice had something of the quality.
Anyway, she stared at me to the full extent of them."
So Lancelot departed, having
put in hand negotiations for a tolerable house not far from St. Andrew's Church,
and studied the accommodation available for horses, and the powers of the
pianos on hire.
Helpmates and hearthmates,
gladdeners of gone years,
Tender companions of our serious days,
Who colour with your kisses,
smiles, and tears,
Life's worn web woven over wonted ways.-—LYTTON.
"How does he seem
now?" said Geraldine, as Lancelot came into the drawing-room of St.
Andrew's Rock at Rockquay, in the full glare of a cold east windy May evening.
"Pretty well fagged
out, but that does not greatly matter.
I say, Cherry, how will you stand this?
Till I saw you in this den, I had no notion how shabby, and dull, and
ugly it is."
"My dear Lance, if you
did but know how refreshing it is to see anything shabby, and dull, and
ugly," Mrs. Grinstead answered with imitative inflections, which set Anna
Vanderkist off into a fit of laughter, infecting both her uncle and aunt. The former gravely said—-
"If you had only
mentioned it in time, I could have gratified you more effectually."
"I suppose it is Aunt
Cherry's charity," said Anna, recovering.
"The reflection that but for her the poor natives would never have
been able to go to their German baths."
"Oh, no such
philanthropy, my dear. It is
homeliness, or rather homeyness, that is dear to my bourgeoise mind. I was afraid of spick-and-span, sap-green
aestheticism, but those curtains have done their own fading in pleasing shades,
that good old sofa can be lain upon, and there's a real comfortable crack on
that frame; while as to the chiffonier, is not it the marrow of the one Mrs.
Froggatt left us, where Wilmet kept all the things in want of mending?"
"Ah! didn't you shudder
when she turned the key?" said Lance.
"Not knowing what was
good for me."
"But you will send for
some of our things and make it nice," entreated Anna, "or Gerald will
never stay here."
"Never fear; we'll have
it presentable by the vacation. As for
Uncle Clement, he would never see whether he was in a hermit's cell, if he only
had one arm-chair and one print from Raffaelle."
There was a certain arch
ring in her voice that had long been absent, and Anna looked joyous as she
waited on them both.
"I am glad you brought
her," said Lance, as she set off with Uncle Clement's tea.
"Yes, she would not
hear of the charms of the season."
"So much the better for
her. She is a good girl, and will be
all the happier down here, as well as better.
There's a whole hive of Merrifields to make merry with her; and, by the
bye, Cherry, what should you think of housing a little chap for the school here
where Fergus Merrifield is?"
"Your dear little
Felix? Delightful!"
"Ouf! No, he is booked for our grammar
school."
"The grammar school was
not good for any of you, except the one whom nothing hurt."
"It is very different
now. I have full confidence in the
head, and the tone is improved throughout.
Till my boys are ready for a public school I had rather they were among
our own people. No, Cherry, I can't do
it, I can't give up the delight of him yet; no, I can't, nor lose his little
voice out of the choir, and have his music spoilt."
"I don't wonder."
"I don't think I spoil
him. I really have flogged him
once," said Lance, half wistfully, half playfully.
"How proud you are of
it."
"It was for maltreating
little Joan Vanderkist, though if it had only been her brother, I should have
said, 'Go it, boys.' It was not till
afterwards that it turned out that Joan was too loyal not to bear the penalty
of having tied our little Audrey into a chair to be pelted with
horse-chestnuts."
"At Adrian's
bidding?"
"Of course. I fancy the Harewood boys set him on. And what I thought of was sending Adrian
here to be schooled at Mrs. Edgar's, boarded by you, mothered by Anna, and altogether
saved from being made utterly detestable, as he will inevitably be if he
remains to tyrannize over Vale Leston."
"Would his mother
consent?"
"You know he is
entirely in Clement's power."
"It would only be
another worry for Clement."
"He need not have much
of him, and I believe he would prefer to have him under his own eye; and Anna
will think it bliss to have him, though what it may prove is another
question. She will keep you from being
too much bothered."
"My dear Lance, will
you never understand, that as furze and thistles are to a donkey, so are
shabbiness and bother to me-—a native element?"
In the morning Clement,
raised on his pillows in bed, showed himself highly grateful for the proposal
about his youngest ward.
"It is very good of
you, Cherry," he said. "That
poor boy has been very much on my mind.
This is the way to profit by my enforced leisure."
"That's the way to make
me dread him. You were to lie
fallow."
"Not exactly. I have thirteen or fourteen years' reading
and thinking to make up. I have done no
more than get up a thing cursorily since I left Vale Leston."
"You are welcome to
read and think, provided it is nothing more recent than St. Chrysostom."
"So here is the letter
to Alda," giving it to her open.
"Short and to the
purpose," she said.
"Alda submits to the
inevitable," he said. "Don't
appear as if she had a choice."
"Only mention the
alleviations. No, you are not to get up
yet. There's no place for you to sit
in, and the east wind is not greatly mitigated by the sea air. Shall I send Anna to read to you?"
"In half-an-hour, if
she is ready then; meantime, those two books, if you please."
She handed him his Greek
Testament and Bishop Andrews, and repaired to the drawing-room, where she found
Anna exulting in the decorations brought from home, and the flowers brought in
from an itinerant barrow.
"I have been setting
down what they must send us from home-—your own chair and table, and the
Liberty rugs, and the casts of St. Cecilia and little St. Cyrillus for those
bare corners, and I am going out for a terra-cotta vase."
"Oh, my dear, the room
is charming; but don't let us get too dependent on pretty things. They demoralize as much or more than ugly
ones."
"Do you mean that they
are a luxury? Is it not right to try to
have everything beautiful?"
"I don't know, my
dear."
"Don't know!"
exclaimed Anna.
"Yes, my dear, I really
get confused sometimes as to what is mere lust of the eye, and what is regard
to whatever things are lovely.
I believe the principle is
really in each case to try whether the high object or the gratification of the
senses should stand first."
"Well," said Anna,
laughing, "I suppose it is a high object not to alienate Gerald, as would
certainly be done by the culture of the ugly—-"
"Or rather of that
which pretends to be the reverse, and is only fashion," said her aunt, who
meantime was moving about, adding nameless grace by her touch to all Anna's
arrangements.
"May I send for the
things then?" said Anna demurely.
"Oh yes, certainly; and
you had better get the study arm-chair for your uncle. There is nothing so comfortable here. But I have news for you. What do you say to having little Adrian
here, to go to school with the Merrifield boy?"
"What fun! what
fun! How delicious!" cried the
sister, springing about like a child.
"I suspected that the
person to whom he would give most trouble would feel it most pleasure."
"You don't know what a
funny, delightful child he is! You
didn't see him driving all the little girls in a team four-in-hand."
It would be much to say that
Mrs. Grinstead was enchanted by this proof of his charms; but they were
interrupted by Marshall, the polite, patronizing butler, bringing in a
card. Miss Mohun would be glad to know
how Mr. Underwood was, and whether there was anything that she could do for
Mrs. Grinstead.
Of course she was asked to
come in, and thus they met, the quick, slim, active little spinster, whose
whole life had been work, and the far younger widow, whose vocation had been
chiefly home-making. Their first silent
impressions were—-
"I hope she is not
going to be pathetic," and—-
"She is enough to take
one's breath away. But I think she has
tact."
After a few exchanges of
inquiry and answer, Miss Mohun said—-
"My niece Gillian is
burning to see you, after all your kindness to her."
"I shall be very
glad. This is not quite a land of
strangers."
"I told her I was sure
you would not want her to-day."
"Thank you. My brother is hardly up to afternoon
visitors yet, and we have not been able to arrange his refuge."
"You have transformed
this room."
"Or Anna has."
On which Miss Mohun begged
for Miss Vanderkist to meet her nieces by and by at tea. Gillian would call for her at four o'clock,
and show her the way that it was hoped might soon be quite natural to her.
"Gillian's 'Aunt
Jane,'" said Anna, when the visitor had tripped out. "I never quite understood her way of
talking of her. I think she worried
her."
"Your pronouns are
confused, Annie. Which worried
which? Or was it mutual?"
"On the whole,"
laughed Anna back, "I prefer an aunt to be waited on to one who pokes me
up."
"Aunt Log to Aunt
Stork? To be poked will be
wholesome."
In due time there was a ring
at the front door; Gillian Merrifield was indulged with a kiss and smile from
the heroine of her worship, and Anna found herself in the midst of a garland of
bright girls. She was a contrast to
them, with her fair Underwood complexion, her short plump Vanderkist figure,
and the mourning she still wore for the fatherly Uncle Grinstead; while the
Merrifield party were all in different shades of the brunette, and wore bright
spring raiment.
They had only just come down
the steps when they were greeted by a young clergyman, who said he was on his
way to inquire for Mr. Underwood, and as he looked as if he expected a reply
from Miss Vanderkist, she said her uncle was better, and would be glad to see
Mr. Brownlow when he had rested after his journey.
"I hope he will not
bother him," she added; "I know who he is now. He was at Whittingtonia for a little while,
but broke down. There's no remembering
all the curates there. My aunt likes
his mother. Does he belong to this St.
Andrew's Church?"
"No, to the old
one. You begin to see the tower."
"Is that where you
go?"
"To the old one in the
morning, but we have a dear little old chapel at Clipstone, where Mr. Brownlow
comes for the afternoon. It is all a
good deal mixed up together."
Then another voice—-
"Do you think Mr.
Underwood would preach to us? Mr.
Brownlow says he never heard any one like him."
Anna stood still.
"Nobody is to dare to
mention preaching to Uncle Clement for the next six months, or they will
deserve never to hear another sermon in their lives."
"What an awful
penalty!"
"For shame,
Dolores! Now," as the short
remainder of a steep street was surmounted, "here, as you may see, is the
great hotel, and next beyond is Aunt Jane's, Beechcroft. On beyond, where you see that queer tower,
is Cliff House, Mr. White's, who married our Aunt Adeline, only they are in
Italy; and then comes Carrara, Captain Henderson's—-"
"You are expected to
rave about Mrs. Henderson's beauty," said the cousin, Dolores Mohun, as
she opened Miss Mohun's gate, between two copper beeches, while Anna listened
to the merry tongues, almost bewildered by the chatter, so unlike the seclusion
and silent watching of the last month; but when Mysie Merrifield asked,
"Is it not quite overwhelming?" she said—-
"Oh no! it is like
being among them all at Vale Leston. My
sisters always tell me my tongue wants greasing when I come down."
Her tongue was to have
exercise enough among the bevy of damsels who surrounded her in Miss Mohun's
drawing-room-—four Merrifields, ranging from twenty-two to twelve years old,
and one cousin, Dolores Mohun, with a father in New Zealand.
"Won't you be in the
Mouse-trap?" presently asked number three, by name Valetta.
"If I did not know that
she would drag it in!" cried Dolores.
"What may it be?"
asked Anna.
"An essay society and
not an essay society," was the lucid answer. "Gillian said you would be sure to belong to it."
"I am afraid I can't if
it takes much time," said Anna in a pleading tone. "My uncle is very far from well, and I
have a good deal to do in the way of reading to him, and my little brother is
coming to go to school with yours."
"Mr. Underwood brought
his little boy," said Gillian.
"Fergus said he was one of the jolliest little chaps he had ever
seen."
"Uncle Reginald quite
lost his heart to him," said Mysie, "and Aunt Jane says he is a
charming little fellow."
"Oh, Felix Underwood!"
said Anna. "Adrian is much more
manly. You should see him ride and
climb trees."
The comparative value of
brothers and cousins was very apparent.
However, it was fixed that Anna should attend the Mouse-trap, and hear
and contribute as she could find time.
"I did the Erl
King," said Valetta.
"'Who rideth so late in the forest so wild?
It is the fond father and his loving child.'"
"Oh, spare us,
Val," cried her sister Gillian.
"Every one has done that."
"Gerald parodied
mine," said Anna.
"'Who trampeth so late in a shocking bad hat?
'Tis the tipsy old father a-hugging his brat."
"Oh, go on."
"I can't recollect any
more, but the Erl King's daughter is a beggar-woman, and it ends with—-
"I'll give
thee a tanner and make him a bait,
So in the gin palace was settled his fate."
Some of the party were
scandalized, others laughed as much or more than the effusion deserved.
"We accept
drawings," added another voice, "and if any one does anything
extraordinarily good in that way, or in writing, it makes a little book."
"We have higher designs
than that," said Gillian. "We
want to print the cream."
"For the benefit of the
school board—-no, the board school."
"Oh! oh! Valetta!"
cried the general voice.
"The thing is,"
explained Gillian, "that we must build a new school for the out-liers of
St. Kenelm's, or 'my lords' will be down on us, and we shall be swamped by
board schools."
"Aunt Jane is frantic
about it," said Dolores Mohun.
"There's no escape from
school board worries!" exclaimed Anna.
"They helped to demolish Uncle Clement."
"There is to be a sale
of work, and a concert, and all sorts of jolly larks," added Valetta.
"Larks! Oh, Val!"
"Larks aren't
slang. They are in the
dictionary," declared Valetta.
"By the bye, she has
not heard the rules of the Mice," put in Mysie.
"I'll say them,"
volunteered Valetta the irrepressible.
"Members of the Mouse-trap never utter slang expressions, never
wear live birds-—I mean dead ones-—in their hats."
"Is an ostrich feather
a live bird or a dead?" demanded Anna.
"And," said
Dolores, "what of the feather screens that the old Miss Smiths have been
making all the winter—circles of pheasants' feathers and peacocks' eyes outside
a border of drakes' curls?"
"Oh, like ostriches
they don't count, since peacocks don't die, and drakes and pheasants must,"
said Gillian.
"We have been getting
ready for this sale ever so long," said Mysie. "Aunt Jane has a working party every Friday for it."
"The fit day,"
said Dolores, "for she is a perfect victim to other people's bad work, and
spends the evening in stitching up and making presentable the wretched garments
they turn out."
"The next rule-—"
began Valetta, but Gillian mercilessly cut her short.
"You know clever
people, Anna. Do you know how to manage
about our Mouse-trap book? Our
bookseller here is a school-board man, all on the wrong side, and when I tried
to feel our way, he made out that the printing and getting it up would cost a
great deal more than we could risk."
"It is a pity that
Uncle Lance is gone home," said Anna.
"He could tell you all about it."
"Could you not write to
him?"
"Oh, yes, but I know he
will want to see a specimen before he can make any estimate."
It was agreed that the
specimen should be forthcoming on the next occasion, and Miss Mohun coming
home, and tea coming in, the conference was ended. Anna began to unravel the relationships.
Dolores Mohun was a niece of
Lady Merrifield. She had lost her own
mother early, and after living with the Merrifields for a year, had been taken
by her father to New Zealand, where he had an appointment. He was a man of science, and she had been
with him at Rotaruna during the terrible volcanic eruption, when there had been
danger and terror enough to bring out her real character, and at the same time
to cause an amount of intimacy with a young lady visitor little older than
herself, which had suddenly developed into a second marriage of her father. In this state of things she had gladly
availed herself of the home offered her at Clipstone, and had gone home under
the escort of her Aunt Phyllis (Mrs. Harry May), who was going with her husband
to spend a year in England. Dolores had
greatly improved in all ways during her two years' absence, and had become an
affectionate, companionable, and thoughtful member of the Merrifield household,
though still taking a line of her own.
The Kalliope whom Gillian
had befriended, to her own detriment, was now the very beautiful Mrs.
Henderson, wife to the managing partner in the marble works. She continued to take a great interest in
the young women employed in designing and mosaics, and had a class of them for
reading and working. Dolores had been
asked to tell first Aunt Jane's G. F. S. (Girl's Friendly Society) girls, and
afterwards Mrs. Henderson's, about her New Zealand experiences and the
earthquake, and this developed into regular weekly lectures on volcanoes and on
colonies. She did these so well, that
she was begged to repeat them for the girls at the High School, and she had
begun to get them up very carefully, studying the best scientific books she
could get, and thinking she saw her vocation.
Mrs. Henderson was quite a
power in the place. Her brother Alexis
was an undergraduate, but had been promised a tutorship for the vacation. He seldom appeared at Carrara, shrinking
from what recalled the pain and shame that he had suffered; while Petros worked
under Captain Henderson, and Theodore was still in the choir at St.
Matthew's. Maura had become the darling
of Mr. White, and was much beloved by Mrs. White, though there had been a
little alarm the previous year, when Lord Rotherwood and his son came down to
open a public park or garden on the top of the cliffs, where Lord Rotherwood's
accident had occurred. Lord Ivinghoe, a
young Guardsman, had shown himself enough disposed to flirt with the pretty
little Greek to make the prudent very glad that her home was on the Italian
mountains.
Gillian was always Mrs.
Henderson's friend, but Gillian's mind was full of other things. For her father had reluctantly promised,
that if one of her little brothers got a scholarship at one of the public
schools, Gillian might fulfil her ardent desire of going to a ladies'
college. Wilfred was a hopeless
subject. It might be doubted if he
could have succeeded. He had apparently
less brain power than some of the family, and he certainly would not exert what
he had. His mother had dragged him
through holiday tasks; but nobody else could attempt to make him work when at
home, and Gillian's offers had been received with mockery or violence. So all her hopes centred on Fergus, who,
thanks to Aunt Jane's evening influence over his lessons, stood foremost in
Mrs. Edgar's school, and was to go up to try for election at Winchester College
at the end of the term. Were Gillian's
hopes to be ruined by his devotion to the underground world?
A breath of air,
A bullock's low,
A bunch of flowers,
Hath power to call from
everywhere
The spirit of forgotten
hours—-
Hours when the heart was
fresh and young,
When every string in freedom
sung,
Ere life had shed one leaf
of green.
JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL.
There had been some
curiosity as to who would be thought worthy to bring the precious little
baronet to Rockquay, and there was some diversion, as well as joy, when it
proved that no one was to be entrusted with him but his eldest aunt, Mrs.
Harewood, who was to bring him in Whitsun week, so that he might begin with a
half-term.
The arrival was a pretty
sight, as the aunt rejoiced at seeing both her hosts at the front door to greet
her, and as Anna held out her glad arms to the little brother who was the pride
of the family.
"Ha, Adrian, boy!"
said the Vicar, only greeting with the hand, at sight of the impatient wriggle
out of the embrace.
It was an open, sunburnt,
ruddy face, and wide, fearless grey eyes that looked up to him, the bullet head
in stiff, curly flaxen hair held aloft with an air of "I am monarch of all
I survey," and there was a tone of equality in the "Holloa, Uncle
Clement," to the tall clergyman who towered so far above the sturdy little
figure.
Presently on the family
inquiries there broke—-
"I say, Annie, where's
the school?"
"At the foot of this
hill."
"I want to see it"
(imperiously).
"You must have some tea
first."
"Then you are glad to
come, Adrian?" said Mrs. Grinstead.
"Yes, Aunt Cherry. It is high time I was away from such a lot
of women-folk," he replied, with his hands in his pockets, and his legs
set like a little colossus.
Anna had no peace till,
after the boy had swallowed a tolerable amount of bread-and-butter and cake,
she took him out, and then Mrs. Harewood had to explain his mother's urgent
entreaties that the regime at Vale Leston should be followed up, and the boy
see only such habits as would be those of total abstainers.
Poor woman! as her brother
and sisters knew, there was reason to believe that the vice which had been
fatal to her happiness and her husband's life, had descended to him from Dutch
forefathers, and there was the less cause for wonder at the passionate desire
to guard her son from it. Almost all
her family had been water-drinkers from infancy, and though Major Harewood
called teetotalism a superstitious contempt of Heaven's good gifts, and
disapproved of supplementing the baptismal vow, his brother the Rector had
found it expedient, for the sake of the parish, to embrace formally the
temperance movement, and thus there had been little difficulty in giving way to
Alda's desire that, at the luncheon-table, Adrian should never see wine or
beer, and she insisted that the same rule should prevail at Rockquay.
Clement had taken the pledge
when a lad of sixteen, and there were those who thought that, save for his
persistence under warnings of failing strength, much of his present illness
might have been averted, with all the consequent treatment. He believed in total abstinence as safer for
his ward, but he thought that the time had come for training, in seeing without
partaking. Wilmet agreed, and said she
had tried to persuade her sister; but she had only caused an hysterical
agitation, so that weakness as usual gained the victory, and she had all but
promised to bring the boy home again unless she could exact an engagement.
"To follow the Vale
Leston practice at his early dinner," said Geraldine.
"That may be,"
said Clement; "but I do not engage not to have the matter out with him if
I see that it is expedient."
"I am only doubtful how
Gerald will take it," said his sister.
"Gerald has always been
used to it at Vale Leston," said Wilmet.
"True, but there he is
your guest. Here he will regard himself
as at home. However, he is a good boy,
and will only grumble a little for appearance sake."
"I should hope
so," said Wilmet severely.
"How is the Penbeacon
affair going on?" asked Clement.
"Oh, Clem, I did not
think you had heard of it."
"I had a letter in the
middle of the mission, but I could not answer it then, and it seems to have
been lost."
Geraldine pronounced it the
straw that broke the camel's back, when she heard of the company that only
waited to dig china clay out of Penbeacon and wash it in the Ewe till they
could purchase a slice of the hill pertaining to the Vale Leston estate. Major Harewood had replied that his
fellow-trustee was too ill to attend to business, and that the matter had
better be let alone till the heir attained his majority.
"Shelved for the
present," said Mrs. Grinstead.
"Fancy Ewe and Leston contaminated!"
"John talks to the
young engineer, Mr. Bramshaw, and thinks that may be prevented; but that is not
the worst," said Wilmet; "it would change the whole face of the
parish, and bring an influx of new people."
"Break up Penbeacon and
cover it with horrible little new houses.
Men like Walsh never see a beautiful place but they begin to think how
to destroy it."
"Well, Cherry, you have
the most influence with Gerald, but he talks to the girls of our having no
right to keep the treasures of the hills for our exclusive pleasure."
"It is not
exclusive. Half the country disports
itself there. It is the great place for
excursions."
"Then he declares that
it is a grave matter to hinder an industry that would put bread into so many
mouths, and that fresh outlets would be good for the place; something too about
being an obstruction, and the rights of labour."
"Oh, I know what that
means. It is only teasing the
cousinhood when they fall on him open-mouthed," said Geraldine, with a
laugh, though with a qualm of misgiving at her heart, while Clement sat
listening and thinking.
Mrs. Harewood farther
explained, that she hoped either that Gerald would marry, or that her sister
would make a home for him at the Priory.
It then appeared that Major Harewood thought it would be wise to leave
the young man to manage the property for himself without interference; and that
the uncle to whom the Major had become heir was anxious to have the family at
hand, even offering to arrange a house for Lady Vanderkist.
"A year of
changes," sighed Geraldine; "but this waiting time seems intended to
let one gather one's breath."
But Wilmet looked careworn,
partly, no doubt, with the harass of continual attention to her sister Alda,
who, though subdued and improved in many important ways, was unavoidably
fretful from ill-health, and disposed to be very miserable over her straitened
means, and the future lot of her eight daughters, especially as the two of the
most favourable age seemed to resign their immediate chances of marrying. Moreover, though all began life as pretty
little girls, they had a propensity to turn into Dutchwomen as they grew up,
and Franceska, the fifth in age, was the only one who renewed the beauty of the
twin sisters.
Alda was not, however,
Wilmet's chief care, though of that she did not speak. She was not happy at heart about her two
boys. Kester was a soldier in India,
not actually unsteady, but not what her own brothers had been, and Edward was a
midshipman, too much of the careless, wild sailor. Easy-going John Harewood's lax discipline had not been successful
with them in early youth, and still less had later severity and indignation
been effectual.
"I am glad you kept
Anna," said Mrs. Harewood, "though Alda is very much disappointed
that she is not having a season in London."
"She will not take
it," said Geraldine. "She
insists that she prefers Uncle Clem to all the fine folk she might meet; and
after all, poor Marilda's acquaintance are not exactly the upper ten thousand."
"Poor Marilda! You know that she is greatly vexed that
Emilia is bent on being a hospital nurse, or something like it, and only half
yields to go out with her this summer in very unwilling obedience."
"Yes, I know. She wants to come here, and I mean to have
her before the long vacation for a little while. We heard various outpourings, and I cannot quite think Miss
Emilia a grateful person, though I can believe that she does not find it lively
at home."
"She seems to be
allowed plenty of slum work, as it is the fashion to call it, and no one can be
more good and useful than Fernan and Marilda, so that I call it sheer
discontent and ingratitude not to put up with them!"
"Only modernishness, my
dear Wilmet. It is the spirit of the
times, and the young things can't help it."
"You don't seem to
suffer in that way-—at least with Anna."
"No; Anna is a dear
good girl, and Uncle Clem is her hero, but I am very glad she has nice young
companions in the Merrifields, and an excitement in prospect in this
bazaar."
"I thought a bazaar
quite out of your line."
"There seems to be no
other chance of saving this place from board schools. Two thousand pounds have to be raised, and though Lord Rotherwood
and Mr. White, the chief owners of property, have done, and will do, much,
there still remains greater need than a fleeting population like this can be
expected to supply, and Clement thinks that a bazaar is quite justifiable in
such a case."
"If there is nothing
undesirable," said Mrs. Harewood, in her original "what it may lead
to" voice.
"Trust Lady Merrifield
and Jane Mohun for that! I am going to
take you to call upon Lilias Merrifield."
"Yea; I shall wish to
see the mother of Bernard's wife."
Clement, who went with them,
explained to his somewhat wondering elder sister that he thought safeguards to
Christian education so needful, that he was quite willing that, even in this
brief stay, all the aid in their power should be given to the cause at
Rockquay. Nay, as he afterwards added
to Wilmet, he was very glad to see how much it interested Geraldine, and that
the work for the Church and the congenial friends were rousing her from her
listless state of dejection.
Lady Merrifield and Mrs.
Harewood were mutually charmed, perhaps all the more because the former was not
impassioned about the bazaar. She said
she had been importuned on such subjects wherever she had gone, and had learnt
to be passive; but her sister Jane was all eagerness, and her younger young
people, as she called the present half of her family, were in the greatest excitement
over their first experience of the kind.
"Well is it for all
undertakings that there should always be somebody to whom all is new, and who
can be zealous and full of delight."
"By no means surtout
point de zele," returned Geraldine.
"As well say no
fermentation," said Lady Merrifield.
"A dangerous
thing," said Clement.
"But sourness comes
without it, or at least deadness," returned his sister.
Wherewith they returned to
talk of their common relations.
It was like a joke to the
brother and sisters, that their Bernard should be a responsible husband and
father, whereas Lady Merrifield's notion of him was as a grave, grand-looking
man with a splendid beard.
Fergus Merrifield was asked
to become the protector of Adrian, whereat he looked sheepish; but after the
round of pets had been made he informed his two youngest sisters, Valetta and
Primrose, that it was the cheekiest little fellow he had ever seen, who would
never know if he was bullied within an inch of his life; not that he (Fergus) should
let the fellows do it.
So though until Monday
morning Anna was the slave of her brother, doing her best to supply the place
of the six devoted sisters at home, the young gentleman ungratefully announced
at breakfast—-
"I don't want gy-arls
after me," with a peculiarly contemptuous twirl at the beginning of the
word; "Merrifield is to call for me."
Anna, who had brought down
her hat, looked mortified.
"Never mind,
Annie," said her uncle, "he will know better one of these days."
"No, I shan't,"
said Adrian, turning round defiantly.
"If she comes bothering after me at dinner-time I shall throw my
books at her—-that's all! There's
Merrifield," and he banged out of the room.
"Never mind,"
again said his uncle, "he has had a large dose of the feminine element,
and this is his swing out of it."
Hopes, which Anna thought
cruel, were entertained by her elders that the varlet would return somewhat
crestfallen, but there were no such symptoms; the boy re-appeared in high
spirits, having been placed well for his years, but not too well for
popularity, and in the playground he had found himself in his natural
element. The boys were mostly of his
own size, or a little bigger, and bullying was not the fashion. He had heard enough school stories to be
wary of boasting of his title, and as long as he did not flaunt it before their
eyes, it was regarded as rather a credit to the school.
Merrifield was elated at the
success of his protege, and patronized him more than he knew, accepting his
devotion in a droll, contemptuous manner, so that the pair were never willingly
apart.
As Fergus slept at his
aunt's during the week, the long summer evenings afforded splendid
opportunities for what Fergus called scientific researches in the quarries and
cliffs. It was as well for Lady
Vanderkist's peace of mind that she did not realize them, though Fergus was
certified by his family to be cautious and experienced enough to be a safe
guide. Perhaps people were less nervous
about sixth sons than only ones.
There was, indeed, a certain
undeveloped idea held out that some of the duplicates of Fergus's precious
collection might be arranged as a sample of the specimens of minerals and
fossils of Rockquay at the long-talked-of sale of work.
If a talent be a claw, look
how he claws him with a talent.
Love's Labour's Lost.
The young ladies were truly
in an intense state of excitement about the sale of work, especially about the
authorship; and Uncle Lancelot having promised to send an estimate, a meeting
of the Mouse-trap was convened to consider of the materials, and certainly the
mass of manuscript contributed at different times to the Mouse-trap magazine
was appalling to all but Anna, who knew what was the shrinkage in the press.
She, however, held herself
bound not to inflict on her busy uncle the reading of anything entirely
impracticable, so she sat with a stern and critical eye as the party mustered
in Miss Mohun's drawing-room, and Gillian took the chair.
"The great
design," said she impressively, "is that the Mouse-trap should
collect and print and publish a selection for the benefit of the school."
The Mice vehemently
applauded, only Miss Norton, the oldest of the party, asked humbly—-
"Would any one think it
worth buying?"
"Oh, yes," cried
Valetta. "Lots of
translations!"
"The Erl King, for
instance," put in Dolores Mohun.
"If Anna would append
the parody," suggested Gillian.
"Oh, parodies are-—are
horrid," said Mysie.
"Many people feel them
so," said Gillian, "but to others I think they are almost a proof of
love, that they can make sport with what they admire so much."
"Then," said
Mysie, "there's Dolores' Eruption!"
"What a nice
subject," laughed Gillian.
"However, it will do beautifully, being the description of the pink
terraces of that place with the tremendous name in New Zealand."
"Were you there?"
cried Anna.
"Yes. I always wonder how she can look the same
after such adventures," said Mysie.
"You know it is much
the same as my father's paper in the Scientific World," said Dolores.
"Nobody over reads
that, so it won't signify," was the uncomplimentary verdict.
"And," added
Mysie, "Mr. Brownlow would do a history of Rockquay, and that would be
worth having."
"Oh yes, the dear ghost
and all!" cried Valetta.
The acclamation was general,
for the Reverend Armine Brownlow was the cynosure curate of the lady
Church-helpers, and Mysie produced as a precious loan, to show what could be
done, the volume containing the choicest morceaux of the family magazine of his
youth, the Traveller's Joy, in white parchment binding adorned with clematis,
and emblazoned with the Evelyn arms on one side, the Brownlow on the other, and
full of photographs and reproductions of drawings.
"Much too costly,"
said the prudent.
"It was not for
sale," said Mysie, obviously uneasy while it was being handed round.
"Half-a-crown should be
our outside price," said Gillian.
"Or a shilling without
photographs, half-a-crown with," was added.
"Shall I ask Uncle
Lance what can be done for how much?" asked Anna, and this was accepted
with acclamation, but, as Gillian observed, they had yet got no further than
Dolores' Eruption and the unwritten history.
"There are lots of
stories," said Kitty Varley; "the one about Bayard and all the
knights in Italy."
"The one," said
Gillian, "where Padua got into the kingdom of Naples, and the lady of the
house lighted a lucifer match, besides the horse who drained a goblet of red
wine."
"You know that was only
the pronouns," suggested the author.
"Then there's
another," added Valetta, "called Monrepos-—such a beauty, when the
husband was wounded, and died at his wife's feet just as the sun gilded the
tops of the pines, and she died when the moon set, and the little daughter went
in and was found dead at their feet."
"No, no, Val,"
said Gillian. "Here is a story
that Bessie has sent us-—really worth having."
"Mesa! Oh, of course," was the acclamation.
"And here's a little
thing of mine," Gillian added modestly, "about the development of the
brain."
At this there was a shout.
"A little thing! Isn't it on the differential calculus?"
"Really, I don't see
why Rockquay should not have a little rational study!"
"Ah! but the present
question is what Rockquay will buy; to further future development it may be,
but I am afraid their brains are not yet developed enough," said Emma
Norton.
"Well then, here is the
comparison between Euripides and Shakespeare."
"That's what you read
papa and everybody to sleep with," said Valetta pertly.
"Except Aunt Lily, and
she said she had read something very like it in Schlegel," added Dolores.
"You must not be too
deep for ordinary intellects, Gillian," said Emma Norton
good-naturedly. "Surely there is
that pretty history you made out of Count Baldwin the Pretender."
"That! Oh, that is a childish concern."
"The better fitted for
our understandings," said Emma, disinterring it, and handing it over to
Anna, while Mysie breathed out—-
"Oh! I did like it! And, Gill, where is Phyllis's account of the Jubilee gaieties and
procession last year?"
"That would make the
fortune of any paper," said Anna.
"Yes, if Lady
Rotherwood will let it be used," said Gillian. "It is really delightful and full of fun, but I am quite
sure that her name could not appear, and I do not expect leave to use it."
"Shall I write and
ask?" said Mysie.
"Oh yes, do; if Cousin
Rotherwood is always gracious, it is specially to you."
"I wrote to my cousin,
Gerald Underwood," said Anna, "to ask if he had anything to spare us,
though I knew he would laugh at the whole concern, and he has sent down
this. I don't quite know whether he was
in earnest or in mischief."
And she read aloud—-
"Dreaming of her laurels green,
The learned Girton girl is seen,
Or under the trapeze neat
Figuring as an athlete.
Never at the kitchen door
Will she scrub or polish more;
No metaphoric dirt she eats,
Literal dirt may form her treats.
Mary never idle sits,
Home lessons can't be learnt by fits;
Hard she studies all the week,
Answers with undaunted cheek.
When to exam Mary goes,
Smartly dressed in stunning clothes,
Expert in algebraic rule,
Best pupil-teacher of her school.
Oh, how clever we are found
Who live on England's happy ground,
Where rich and poor and wretched may
Be drilled in Whitehall's favoured way."
There was a good deal of
laughter at this parody of Jane Taylor's Village Girl, though Mysie was
inclined to be shocked as at something profane.
"Then what will you
think of this?" said Anna, beginning gravely to read aloud The Inspector's
Tour.
It was very clever, so
clever that Valetta and Kitty Varley both listened as in sober earnest, never
discovering, or only in flashes like Mysie, that it was really a satire on all
the social state of the different European nations, under the denomination of
schools. One being depicted as highly
orthodox, but much given to sentence insubordination to dark cold closets;
another as given to severe drill, but neglecting manners; a third as
repudiating religious teaching, and now and then preparing explosions for the
masters-—no, teachers. The various
conversations were exceedingly bright and comical; and there were brilliant
hits at existing circumstances, all a little in a socialistic spirit, which
made Anna pause as she read. She really
had not perceived till she heard it in her own voice and with other ears how
audacious it was, especially for a school bazaar.
Dolores applauded with her
whole heart, but owned that it might be too good for the Mouse-trap, it would
be too like catching a monkey! Gillian,
more doubtfully, questioned whether it would "quite do"; and Mysie,
when she understood the allusions, thought it would not. Emma Norton was more decided, and it ended
by deciding that the paper should be read to the elders at Clipstone, and their
decision taken before sending it to Uncle Lance.
The spirits of the Muscipula
party rose as they discussed the remaining MSS., but these were not of the
highest order of merit; and Anna thought that the really good would be
sufficient; and all the Underwood kith and kin had sufficient knowledge of the
Press through their connection with the 'Pursuivant' to be authorities on the
subject.
"Fergus has some
splendid duplicate ammonites for me and bits of crystal," said Mysie.
"Oh, do let Fergus
alone," entreated Gillian.
"He is almost a petrifaction already, and you know what depends on
it."
"My sister is coming
next week for a few days," said Anna.
"She is very clever, and may help us."
Emilia was accordingly
introduced to the Mice, but she was not very tolerant of them. Essay societies, she said, were out of date,
and she thought the Rockquay young ladies a very country-town set.
"You don't know them,
Emmie," said Anna. "Gillian
and Dolores are very remarkable girls, only-—"
"Only they are kept
down by their mothers, I suppose. Is
that the reason they don't do anything but potter after essay societies and
Sunday-schools like our little girls at Vale Leston? Why, I asked Gillian, as you call her, what they were doing about
the Penitents' Home, and she said her mother and Aunt Jane went to look after
it, but never talked about it."
"You know they are all
very young."
"Young indeed! How is one ever to be of any use if mothers
and people are always fussing about one's being young?"
"One won't always be
so-—"
"They would think so,
like the woman of a hundred years old, who said on her daughter's death at
eighty, 'Ah, poor girl, I knew I never should rear her!' How shall I get to see the Infirmary
here?"
"Miss Mohun would take
you."
"Can't I go without a
fidgety old maid after me?"
"I'll tell you what I
wish you would do, Emmie. Write an
account of one of your hospital visits, or of the match-girls, for the
Mouse-trap. Do! You know Gerald has written something for
it."
"He! Why he has too much sense to write for your
voluntary schools. Or it would be too
clever and incisive for you. Ah! I see it was so by your face! What did he send you? Have you got it still?"
"We have really a
parody of his which is going in--The Girton Girl. Now, Emmie, won't you?
You have told me such funny things about your match-girls."
"I do not mean to let
them be turned into ridicule by your prim, decorous swells. Why, I unfortunately told Fernan Brown one
story—-about their mocking old Miss Bruce with putting on imitation spectacles-—and
it has served him for a cheval de bataille ever since! Oh, my dear Anna, he gets more hateful than
ever. I wish you would come back and
divert his attention."
"Thank you."
"Don't you think we
could change? You could go and let
Marilda fuss with you, now that Uncle Clem and Aunt Cherry are so well, and I
could look after Adrian, and go to the Infirmary, and the penitents, and all
that these people neglect; maybe I would write for the Mouse-trap, if Gerald
does when he comes home."
Anna did not like the
proposal, but she pitied Emilia, and cared for her enough to carry the scheme
to her aunt. But Geraldine shook her
head. The one thing she did not wish
was to have Emmie riding, walking, singing, and expanding into philanthropy
with Gerald, and besides, she knew that Emilia would never have patience to
read to her uncle, or help Adrian in his preparation.
"Do you really wish
this, my dear?" she asked.
"N-—no, not at all; but
Emmie does. Could you not try
her?"
"Annie dear, if you
wish to have a fortnight or more in town-—"
"Oh no, no, auntie,
indeed!"
"We could get on now
without you. Or we would keep Emmie
till the room is wanted; but I had far rather be alone than have the
responsibility of Emmie."
"No, no, indeed; I
don't think Adrian would be good long with her. I had much rather stay—-only Emmie did wish, and she hates
the—-"
"Oh, my dear, you need
not tell me; I only know that I cannot have her after next week; the room will
be wanted for Gerald."
"She could sleep with
me."
"No, Annie, I must
disappoint you. There is not room for
her, and her flights when Gerald comes would never do for your uncle. You know it yourself."
Anna could not but own the
wisdom of the decision, and Emmie, after grumbling at Aunt Cherry, took herself
off. She had visited the Infirmary and
the Convalescent Home, and even persuaded Mrs. Hablot to show her the Union
Workhouse, but she never sent her contribution to the Mouse-trap.
Do the work that's nearest,
Though it's dull at whiles,
Helping, when we meet them,
Lame dogs over stiles.
See in every hedgerow
Marks of angels' feet;
Epics in each pebble
Underneath our feet.-—C.
KINGSLEY.
"Drawing? Well done, Cherie! That's a jolly little beggar; quite masterly, as old Renville
would say," exclaimed Gerald Underwood, looking at a charming water-colour
of a little fisher-boy, which Mrs. Grinstead was just completing.
"'The Faithful
Henchman,' it ought to be called," said Anna. "That little being has attached himself to Fergus
Merrifield, and follows him and Adrian everywhere on what they are pleased to
call their scientific expeditions."
"The science of
larks?"
"Oh dear, no. Fergus is wild after fossils, and has made
Adrian the same, and he really knows an immense deal. They are always after fossils and stones when they are out of
school."
"The precious
darling!"
"Miss Mohun says Fergus
is quite to be trusted not to take him into dangerous places."
"An unlooked-for
blessing. Ha!" as he turned over
his aunt's portfolio, "that's a stunner!
You should work it up for the Academy."
"This kind of thing is
better for the purpose," Mrs. Grinstead said.
"Throw away such work
upon a twopenny halfpenny bazaar!
Heaven forefend!"
"Don't be tiresome,
Gerald," entreated Anna. "You
are going to do all sorts of things for it, and we shall have no end of
fun."
"For the sake of
stopping the course of the current," returned Gerald, proceeding to
demonstrate in true nineteenth-century style the hopelessness of subjecting
education to what he was pleased to call clericalism. "You'll never reach the masses while you insist on using an
Apostle spoon."
"Masses are made up of
atoms," replied his aunt.
"And we shall be lost
if you don't help," added Anna.
"I would help readily
enough if it were free dinners, or anything to equalize the existence of the
classes, instead of feeding the artificial wants of the one at the expense of
the toil and wretchedness of the other."
He proceeded to mention some
of the miseries that he had learnt through the Oxford House—-dilating on them
with much enthusiasm-—till presently his uncle came in, and ere long a
parlour-maid announced luncheon, just as there was a rush into the house. Adrian was caught by his sister, and
submitted, without more than a "Bother!" to be made respectable, and
only communicating in spasmodic gasps facts about Merrifield and hockey.
"Where's
Marshall?" asked Gerald at the first opportunity, on the maid leaving the
room.
"Marshall could not
stand it," said his aunt. "He
can't exist without London, and doing the honours of a studio."
"Left you!"
"Most politely he
informed me that this place does not agree with his health; and there did not
seem sufficient scope for his services since the Reverend Underwood had become
so much more independent. So we were
thankful to dispose of him to Lord de Vigny."
"He was a great
plague," interpolated Adrian, "always jawing about the
hall-door."
"Are you really without
a man-servant?" demanded Gerald.
"In the house. Lomax comes up from the stables to take some
of the work. Some lemonade,
Gerald?"
Gerald gazed round in search
of unutterable requirements; but only met imploring eyes from aunt and sister,
and restraining ones from his uncle. He
subsided and submitted to the lemonade, while Anna diverted attention by
recurring rather nervously to the former subject.
"And I have got rid of
Porter, she kept me in far too good order."
"As if Sibby did
not," said Clement.
"Aye, and you too! But that comes naturally, and began in
babyhood!"
"What have you done
with the house at Brompton?"
"Martha is taking care
of it-—Mrs. Lightfoot, don't you know?
One of our old interminable little Lightfoots, who went to be a printer
in London, married, and lost his wife; then in our break-up actually married
Martha to take care of his children!
Now he is dead, and I am thankful to have her in the house."
"To frighten loafers
with her awful squint."
"You forgive the
rejection of 'The Inspector's Tour'?
Indeed I think you expected it."
"I wanted to see whether
the young ladies would find it out."
"No compliment to our
genius," said his aunt.
"I assure you, like
Mrs. Bennet, 'there is plenty of that sort of thing,'" said Anna. "Some of them were mystified, but
Gillian and Dolores Mohun were in ecstasies."
"Ecstasies from that
cheerful name?"
"She is the New Zealand
niece-—Mr. Maurice Mohun's daughter.
They carried it home to their seniors, and of course the verdict was
'too strong for Rockquay atmosphere,'" said his aunt.
"So it did not even go
to Uncle Lance," said Anna.
"Shall you try the 'Pursuivant'?"
"On the contrary, I
shall put in the pepper and salt I regretted, and try the 'Censor'."
"Indeed?" observed
his uncle, in a tone of surprise.
"Oh," said Gerald
coolly, "I have sent little things to the 'Censor' before, which they seem
to regard in the light of pickles and laver."
The 'Censor' was an able
paper on the side of philosophical politics, and success in that quarter was a
feather in the young man's cap, though not quite the kind of feather his elders
might have desired.
"Journalism is a kind
of native air to us," said Mrs. Grinstead, "but from 'Pur.'"
"'Pur' is the element
of your dear old world, Cherie," said Gerald, "and here am I come to
do your bidding in its precincts, for a whole long vacation."
He spoke lightly, and with a
pretty little graceful bow to his aunt, but there was something in his eyes and
smile that conveyed to her a dread that he meant that he only resigned himself
for the time and looked beyond.
"Uncle Lance is coming,"
volunteered Adrian.
"Yes," said
Geraldine. "Chorister that he was,
and champion of Church teaching that he is, he makes the cause of Christian
education everywhere his own, and is coming down to see what he can do inexpensively
with native talent for concert, or masque, or something—-'Robin Hood'
perhaps."
"Ending in character
with a rush on the audience?" said Gerald. "Otherwise 'Robin Hood' is stale."
"Tennyson has spoilt
that for public use," said Mrs. Grinstead. "But was not something else in hand?"
"Only rehearsed. It never came off," said Gerald.
"The most awful
rot," said Adrian. "I would
have nothing to do with it."
"In consequence it was
a failure," laughed Gerald.
"It was 'The Tempest',
wasn't it?" said Anna.
"Not really!" exclaimed
Mrs. Grinstead.
"About as like as a
wren to an eagle," said Gerald.
"We had it at the
festival last winter. The authors
adapted the plot, that was all."
"The authors being--
"The present
company," said Gerald, "and Uncle Bill, with Uncle Lance supplying or
adapting music, for we were not original, I assure you."
"It was when Uncle Clem
was ill," put in Anna, "and somehow I don't think we took in the
accounts of it."
"No," said Gerald,
"and nobody did it con amore, though we could not put it off. I should like to see it better done."
"Such rot!"
exclaimed Adrian. "There's an old
man, he was Uncle Lance with the great white beard made out of Kit's white
bear's skin, and he lived in a desert island, where there was a shipwreck—-very
jolly if you could see it, only you can't—-and the savages-—no, the wreckers
all came down."
"What, in a desert
island?"
"It was not exactly
desert. Gerald, I say, do let there be
savages. It would be such a lark to
have them all black, and then I'd act."
"What an
inducement!"
"Then somebody turned
out to be somebody's enemy, and the old chap frightened them all with squibs
and crackers and fog-horns, till somebody turned out to be somebody else's son,
and married the daughter."
"If you trace 'The
Tempest' through that version you are clever," said Gerald.
"I told you it was
awful rot," said Adrian.
"There's
Merrifield! Excuse me,
Cherie." And off he went.
"The sentiments of the
actors somewhat resembled Adrian's. It
was too new, and needed more learning and more pains, so they beg to revert to
'Robin Hood'. However, I should like to
see it well got up for once, if only by amateurs. Miranda has a capital song by Uncle Bill, made for Francie's
soprano. She cuts you all out,
Anna."
"That she does, in looks
and voice, but she could not act here in public. However, we will lay it before the Mouse-trap. Was it printed?"
"Lance had enough for
the performers struck off. Francie
could send some up."
"After all," said
Cherie, "the desert island full of savages and wreckers is not more
remarkable than the 'still-vex'd Bermoothes' getting between Argiers and
Sicily."
"It really was
one of the Outer Hebrides," said Gerald, with the eagerness that belonged
to authorship, "so that there could be any amount of Scottish songs. Prospero is an old Highland chief, who has
been set adrift with his daughter-—Francie Vanderkist to wit-—and floated up
there, obtaining control over the local elves and brownies. Little Fely was a most dainty sprite."
"I am glad you did not
make Ariel an electric telegraph," said his aunt.
"Tempting, but such
profanity in the face of Vale Leston was forbidden, and so was the comic
element, as bad for the teetotallers."
"But who were the
wreckers?" asked Anna.
"Buccaneers, my dear,
singing songs out of the 'Pirate'-—schoolmaster, organist, and choir
generally. They had captured Prospero's
supplanter (he was a Highland chief in league with the Whigs) by the leg, while
the exiled fellow was Jacobite, so as to have the songs dear to the feminine
mind. They get wrecked on the island,
and are terrified by the elves into releasing Alonso, etc. Meantime Ferdinand carries logs, forgathers
with Miranda and Prospero-—and ends-—" He flourished his hands.
"And it wasn't
acted!"
"No, we were getting it
up before Christmas," said Gerald, "and
then-—"
He looked towards Clement,
whose illness had then been at the crisis.
"Very inconsiderate of
me," said Clement, smiling, "as the old woman said when her husband
did not die before the funeral cakes were stale. But could it not come off at the festival?"
"Now," said
Gerald, "that the boy is gone, I may be allowed a glass of beer. Is that absurdity to last on here?"
"Adrian's mother would
not let him come on any other terms," said Mrs. Grinstead.
"Did she also stipulate
that he was never to see a horse? Quite
as fatal to his father."
"You need not point the
unreason, but consider how she has suffered."
"You go the way to make
him indulge on the sly."
"True, perhaps,"
said Clement, "but I mean to take the matter up when I know the poor
little fellow better."
Gerald gave a little shrug,
a relic of his foreign ancestry, and Anna proposed a ride to Clipstone to tell
Gillian Merrifield of the idea.
"Eh, the dogmatic
damsel that came with you the year we had 'Midsummer Night's Dream'?"
"Yes, sister to Uncle
Bernard's wife. Do you know Jasper
Merrifield? Clever man. Always photographing."
So off they went, Gerald
apparently in a resigned state of mind, and came upon dogs and girls in an old
quarry, where Mysie had dragged them to look for pretty stones and young ferns
to make little rockeries for the sale of work.
'The Tempest' was propounded, and received with acclamation, though the
Merrifields declared that they could not sing, and their father would not allow
them to do so in public if they could!
Dolores looked on in a sort
of silent scorn at a young man who could talk so eagerly about "a trumpery
raree-show," especially for an object that she did not care about. None of them knew how far it was the pride
of authorship and the desire of pastime.
Only Jasper said when he heard their report—-
"Underwood is a queer
fellow! One never knows where to have
him. Socialist one minute, old Tory the
next."
"A dreamer?" asked
Dolores.
"If you like to call
him so. I believe he will dawdle and
dream all his life, and never do any good!"
"Perhaps he is
waiting."
"I don't believe in
waiting," said Jasper, wiping the dust off his photographic glasses. "Why, he has a lovely moor of his own,
and does not know how to use it!"
"Conclusive," said
Gillian.
The other won't agree
thereto,
So here they fall to strife;
With one another they did
fight
About the children's life.
Babes in the Wood.
"I say, Aunt
Cherry," said Adrian, "the fossil forest is to be uncovered
to-morrow, and Merrifield is going to stay for it, and I'm going down with
him."
"Fossil forest? What, in the Museum?"
"No, indeed. In Anscombe Cove, they call it. There's a forest buried there, and bits come
up sometimes. To-morrow there's to be a
tremendous low tide that will leave a lot of it uncovered, and Merrifield and I
mean to dig it out, and if there are some duplicate bits they may be had for
the bazaar."
"Yes, they have been
begging Fergus's duplicates for a collection of fossils," said Anna. "But can it be safe? A low tide means a high tide, you
know."
"Bosh!" returned
Adrian.
"Miss Mohun is sure to
know all about the tides, I suppose," said Clement; "if her nephew
goes with her consent I suppose it is safe."
"If-—" said Mrs.
Grinstead.
Adrian looked contemptuous,
and muttered something, on which Anna undertook to see Miss Mohun betimes, and
judge how the land, or rather the sea, lay, and whether Fergus was to be
trusted.
It would be a Saturday, a
whole holiday, on which he generally went home for Sunday, and Adrian spent the
day with him, but the boys' present scheme was, to take their luncheon with
them and spend the whole day in Anscombe Cove.
This was on the further side of the bay from the marble works, shut in
by big cliffs, which ran out into long chains of rocks on either side, but
retreated in the midst, where a little stream from the village of Anscombe, or
rather from the moorland beyond, made its way to the sea.
The almanacks avouched that
on this Saturday there would be an unusually low tide, soon after twelve
o'clock, and Fergus had set his heart on investigating the buried forest that
there was no doubt had been choked by the combined forces of river and
sea. So Anna found that notice had been
sent to Clipstone of his intention of devoting himself to the cove and not
coming home till the evening, and that his uncle and aunt did not think there
was any danger, especially as his constant henchman, Davie Blake, was going
with him, and all the fisher-boys of the place were endowed with a certain
instinct for their own tides. The only
accident Jane Mohun had ever known was with a stranger.
Anna had no choice but to
subside, and the boys started as soon as the morning's tide would have gone
down sufficiently, carrying baskets for their treasures containing their
luncheon, and apparently expecting to find the forest growing upright under the
mud, like a wood full of bushes.
The cove for which they were
bound was on the further side of the chain of rocks, nearly two miles from
Rockquay, and one of the roads ran along the top of the red cliffs that shut it
in, with no opening except where the stream emerged, and even that a very
scanty bank of shingle.
In spite of all assurances,
Anna could not be easy about her darling, and when afternoon came, and the
horses were brought to the door, she coaxed Gerald into riding along the cliffs
in the Anscombe direction, where there was a good road, from whence they could
turn down a steep hill into the village, and thence go up a wild moor beyond,
or else continue along the coast for a considerable distance.
As they went out she could
see nothing of the boys, only rocks rising through an expanse of mud, and the
sea breaking beyond. She would have
preferred continuing the cliff road, but Gerald had a turn for the moor, and
carried her off through the village of Anscombe, up and up, till they had had a
lively canter on the moor, and looked far out at sea. When they turned back and had reached the cliff road, what had
been a sheet of mud before had been almost entirely covered with sparkling
waves, and there was white foam beating against some of the rocks.
"I hope Adrian is gone
home," sighed Anna.
"Long ago, depend on
it," returned Gerald carelessly; but the next moment his tone
changed. "By Jove!" he
exclaimed, and pointed with his whip to a rock, or island, at the end of the
range of rocks.
He was much the more
long-sighted of the two, and she could only first discern that there was
something alive upon the rock.
"Oh!" she cried,
"is it the boys-—I can't see?"
"I can't tell. It is boys, maybe fishers. I must get out to them," he
replied. "Now, Anna, be quiet-—use
your senses. It is somebody,
anyway. I saw the opening of a path
down the rock just now," and he threw himself off his horse, and threw her
the bridle. "You ride to the first
house; find where there is a Coast-guard station, or any fisherman to put out a
boat. No time to be lost."
"Oh, is it, is it—-"
cried the bewildered girl, with no hand to feel for her eyeglass. "Where shall I go?"
"I tell you I can't
tell," he shouted in answer to both questions, half angrily, already on
his way. "Don't dawdle," and
he disappeared.
Poor Anna, she had no inclination
to dawdle, but the two horses were a sore impediment, and she went on some way
without seeing any houses. Should she
turn back to the little road leading down from Anscombe? but that was rough and
difficult, and could not be undertaken quickly with a led horse; or should she
make the best of her way to the nearest villas, outskirts of Rockquay? However, after a moment the swish of
bicycles was heard, and up came two young men, clerks apparently, let loose by
Saturday. They halted, and in answer to
her agitated question where there was a house, pointed to a path which they
said led down to the Preventive station, and asked whether there had been an
accident, and whether they could be of use.
They were more able to decide what was best to be done than she could
be, and they grew more keenly interested when they understood for whom she
feared. Petros White, brother to Mrs.
Henderson, and nephew to Aunt Adeline's husband, was one of them, the other, a
youth also employed at the marble works.
This latter took the horses off her hands, while Petros showed her the
way to the Coast-guard station by a steep path, leading to a sort of ledge in
the side of the cliff, scooped out partly by nature and partly by art, where
stood the little houses covered with slate.
There the mistress was
looking out anxiously with a glass; while below, the Preventive man was
unlocking the boat-house, having already observed the peril of the boys, but
lamenting the absence of his mate.
Petros ran down at speed to offer his help, and Anna could only borrow
the glass, through which she plainly saw the three boys, bare-legged, sitting
huddled up on the top of the rock, but with the waves still a good way from
them, and their faces all turned hopefully towards the promontory of rock along
which she could see Gerald picking his way; but there was evidently a terrible
and fast-diminishing space between its final point and the rock of refuge.
Anna was about to rush down,
and give her help with an oar; but the woman withheld her, saying that she
would only crowd the boat and retard the rescue, for which the two were quite
sufficient, only the danger was that the current of the stream might make the
tide rise rapidly in the bay. There
were besides so many rocks and shoals, that it was impossible to proceed
straight across, but it was needful absolutely to pass the rock and then turn
back on it from the open sea. It was
agonizing for the sister to watch the devious course, and she turned the glass
upon the poor boys, plainly making out Adrian's scared, restless look, as he
clung to the fisher-lad, and Fergus nursing his bag of specimens with his knees
drawn up. By and by Gerald was wading,
and with difficulty preventing himself from being washed off the rocks. He paused, saw her, and waved
encouragement. Then he plunged along,
not off his feet, and reached the island where the boys were holding out their
arms to him. There ensued a few moments
of apparently hot debate, and she saw, to her horror and amazement, that he was
thrusting back one boy, who struggled and almost fell off the rock in his
passion, as Gerald lifted down the little fisher-boy. Of course she could not hear the words, "Come, boy. No, Adrian.
Noblesse oblige. I will come
back, never fear. I can take but one,
don't I tell you. I will come
back."
Those were Gerald's words,
while Adrian threw himself on the rock, sobbing and screaming, while Fergus sat
still, hugging his bag. Anna could have
screamed with her brother, for the boat seemed to have overshot the mark, and
to be going quite aloof, when all depended upon a few minutes. She could hardly hear the words of the
Preventive woman, who had found a second glass: "Never you fear, miss, the
boat will be up in time."
She could not speak. Her heart was in wild rebellion as she
thought of the comparative value of her widowed mother's only son with that of
the fisher-boy, or even of Fergus, one of so large a family. She could not or would not look to see what
Gerald was doing with the wretched little coast boy; but she heard her
companion say that the gentleman had put the boy down to scramble among the
rocks, and he himself was going back to the pair on the rock, quite swimming
now.
She durst look again, and
saw that he had scrambled up to the boys' perch, and had lifted Adrian up, but
there was white spray dashing round now.
She could not see the boat.
"They have to keep to
the other side," explained the woman.
"God keep them! It will be
a near shave. The gentleman is taking
off his coat!"
Again there was a leap of
foam-—over! over! Then all was blotted
out, but the woman exclaimed—-
"There they are!"
"Oh! where?"
"One swimming! He is floating the other."
Anna could see no
longer. She dashed aside the telescope,
then begged to be told, then looked again.
No prayer would come but "Save him! save him!"
There was a call quite
close.
"Mr. Norris, sir, put
off your boat! Master Fergus-—Oh! is he
off?" and, drenched and breathless, Davy sank down on the ground at their
feet, quite spent, unable at first to get out a word after those panting ones;
but in a minute he spoke in answer to the agonized "Which? Who?"
"Master Fergus is
swimming. The young sir couldn't."
Anna recollected how her
mother's fears and entreaties had prevented Mr. Harewood from teaching Adrian
to swim.
"Gent is floating
him," added the boy. "He took
me first, because I could get over the rocks and get help soonest. He is a real gentleman, he is."
Anna could not listen to
anything but "The boat is coming!"
"Oh, but they don't see! They are going away from it!"
"That's the
current," said Mrs. Norris.
"My man knows what he is about, and so does the gentleman, never
fear."
There was another terrible
interval, and then boat and swimmers began to approach, though in what condition
could not be made out. A dark little
head, no doubt that of Fergus, was lifted in, then another figure was raised
and taken into the boat; Gerald swam with a hand on it for a short distance,
then was helped in, and almost at once took an oar.
"That's right,"
said Mrs. Norris. "It will keep
out the cold."
"They are not coming
here," exclaimed Anna. "They
are going round the point."
"All right," was
the answer. "'Tis more direct, you
see, no shoals, and the young gentlemen will get to their own homes and beds
all the quicker. Now, miss, you will
come in and take a cup of tea, I am sure you want it, and I had just made it
when Norris saw the little lads."
"Oh, thank you, I must
get back at once. My little
brother—-"
"Yes, yes, miss, but
you'll be able to ride the faster for a bit of bread and cup of tea! You are all of a tremble."
It was true, and to pacify
her, Mrs. Norris sent a child up to bid Petros have the horses ready, and Anna
was persuaded to swallow a little too, which happily had cooled enough for her
haste, but she hurried off, leaving Mrs. Norris to expend her hospitality on
Davy, who endured his drenching like a fish, and could hardly wait even to
swallow thick bread-and-butter till he could rush off to hear of his dear
Master Fergus.
The horses were ready. Petros had been joined by other spectators,
and was able to entrust the bicycles to one of them, while he himself undertook
to lead Mr. Underwood's horse to the stable.
Anna rode off at as much speed or more than was safe downhill among the
stones. She had to cross the broad
parade above the quay, and indeed she believed she had come faster than the
boat, which had to skirt round the side of the promontory between Anscombe Cove
and Rockquay. In fact, when she came
above the town she could see a crowd on the quay and pier, all looking out to
sea, and she now beheld two boats making for the harbour.
Then she had to ride between
walls and villas, and lost sight of all till she emerged on the parade, and
thought she saw Uncle Clement's hat above the crowd as she looked over their
heads.
She gave her horse to a
bystander, who evidently knew her, for a murmur went through the crowd of
"Little chap's sister," and way was made for her to get forward,
while several rough voices said, "All right"; "Coast-guard
boat"; "Not this one."
Her uncle and Miss Mohun
wore standing together. General Mohun
could be seen in the foremost boat, and they could hear him call out, with a
wave of his arm—-
"All right! All safe!"
"You hero! Where's Gerald?" Miss Mohun exclaimed, as Anna came up to
her.
"There!" and she
pointed to the Coast-guard boat.
"We saw the boys from Anscombe Cliff, and he went out to
them."
"Gerald,"
exclaimed his uncle, with a ring of gladness in his voice, all the more that it
was plain that the rower was indeed Gerald, and he began to hail those on
shore, while Fergus's head rose up from the bottom of the boat.
In a few moments they were
close to the quay, and the little sodden mass that purported to be Fergus was
calling out—-
"Aunt Jane! Oh, I've lost such a bit of aralia. Where's Davy?"
"Here, take care. He is all right," were Gerald's words.
He meant Adrian, whom his cousin lifted out, with eyes
open and conscious, but with limp hands and white exhausted looks, to be
carried to the fly that stood in waiting.
"Is the other boy
safe?" asked Gerald anxiously.
"Oh yes; but how could
you?" were the first words that came to Anna; but she felt rebuked by a
strange look of utter surprise, and instead of answering her he replied to
General Mohun—-
"Thanks, no, I'll walk
up!" as a rough coat was thrown over his dripping and scanty garments.
"The wisest way,"
said the General. "Can you,
Fergus?"
"Yes, quite well. Oh, my aralia!"
"He has been half
crying all the way home about his fossils," said Gerald. "Never mind, Fergus; look out for the
next spring-tide. Uncle Clem, you ought
to drive up."
Clement submitted, clearly
unable to resist, and sat down by Anna, who had her brother in her arms,
rubbing his hands and warming them, caressing him, and asking him how he felt,
to which the only answer she got was—-
"It was beastly. I have my mouth awfully full of water
still."
Clement made a low murmur of
thanksgiving, and Anna, looking up, was startled to see how white and helpless
he was. The way was happily very short,
but he had so nearly fainted that Gerald, hurrying on faster uphill than the
horse to reassure his aunt, lifted him out, not far from insensible, and
carried him with Sibby's help to his bed in the room on the ground-floor, where
the remedies were close at hand, Geraldine and nurse anxiously administering
them; when the first sign of revival he gave was pointing to Gerald's dripping
condition, and signing to him to go and take care of himself.
"All right, yes, boys
and all! All right Cherie."
And he went, swallowing down
the glass of stimulant which his aunt turned from her other patient for a
moment to administer, but she was much too anxious about Clement to have
thought for any one else, for truly it did seem likely that he would be the
chief sufferer from the catastrophe.
Little Davy's adventure, as
he had lost no clothes, made no more impression on his parents than if he had
been an amphibious animal or a water dog, and when Fergus came out of Beechwood
Cottage after having changed the few clothes he had retained, and had a good
meal, to be driven home with his uncle in the dog-cart, his constant henchman
was found watching for news of him at the gate.
"Please, sir, I think
we'll find your aralia next spring-tide."
Whereupon General Mohun told
him he was a good little chap, and presented him with a half-crown, the largest
sum he had ever possessed in his life.
Fergus did not come off
quite so well, for when the story had been told, though his mother had trembled
and shed tears of thankfulness as she kissed him, and his sisters sprang at him
and devoured him, while all the time he bemoaned his piece of the stump of an
aralia, and a bit of cone of a pinus, and other treasures to which imaginative
regret lent such an aid, that no doubt he would believe the lost contents of
his bag to have been the most precious articles that he had ever collected; his
father, however, took him into his study.
"Fergus," he said
gravely, "this is the second time your ardour upon your pursuits has
caused danger and inconvenience to other people, this time to yourself
too."
Fergus hung his head, and
faltered something about—-"Never saw."
"No, that is the
point. Now I say nothing about your
pursuits. I am very glad you should
have them, and be an intelligent lad; but they must not be taken up
exclusively, so as to drive out all heed to anything else. Remember, there is a great difference
between courage and foolhardiness, and that you are especially warned to be
careful if your venturesomeness endangers other people's lives."
So Fergus went off under a
sense of his father's displeasure, while Adrian lay in his bed, kicking about,
admired and petted by his sister, who thought every one very unkind and
indifferent to him; and when he went to sleep, began a letter to her eldest
sister describing the adventure and his heroism in naming terms, such as on
second thoughts she suppressed, as likely to frighten her mother, and lead to
his immediate recall.
Nothing of him that doth
fade,
But doth suffer a sea-change
Into something rich and
strange.-—Tempest.
Sunday morning found Anna in
a different frame of mind from that of the evening before. Uncle Clement had been very ill all night,
and the house was to be kept as quiet as possible. When Anna came in from early Celebration, Aunt Cherry came out
looking like a ghost, and very anxious, and gave a sigh of relief on Adrian
being reported still sound asleep.
Gerald presently came down, pale and languid, but calling himself all
right, and loitering over his breakfast till after the boy appeared, so rosy
and ravenous as to cause no apprehension, except that he should devour too much
apricot jam, and use his new boots too noisily on the stairs.
Anna devised walking him to
Beechcroft to hear if there were any news of Fergus, and though he observed,
with a certain sound of contemptuous rivalship, that there was no need, for
"Merrifield was as right as a trivet," he was glad enough to get out of
doors a little sooner, and though he affected to be bored by the kind inquiries
of the people they met, he carried his head all the higher for them.
Nobody was at home except
General Mohun, but he verified Adrian's impression of his nephew's soundness,
whatever the mysterious comparison might mean; and asked rather solicitously
not only after Mr. Underwood but after Gerald, who, he said, was a delicate
subject to have made such exertions.
"It really was very
gallant and very sensible behaviour," he said, as he took his hat to walk
to St. Andrew's with the brother and sister, but Anna was conscious of a little
pouting in Adrian's expression, and displeasure in his stumping steps.
Gerald came to church, but
went to sleep in the sermon, and had altogether such a worn-out look that no
one could help remembering that he had never been very strong, and had gone
through much exertion the day before, nor could he eat much of the mid-day
meal. Mrs. Grinstead, who was more at
ease about her brother, looked anxiously at him, and with a kind of smile the
word "Apres" passed between them.
The Sunday custom was for Clement to take Adrian to say his Catechism,
and have a little instruction before going out walking, but as this could not
be on this day, Anna and he were to go out for a longer walk than usual, so as
to remove disturbance from the household.
Gerald declined, of course, and was left extended on the sofa; but just
as Anna and Adrian had made a few steps along the street, and the boy had
prevailed not to walk to Clipstone, as she wished, but to go to the cliffs,
that she might hear the adventure related in sight of the scene of action, he
discovered that he had left a glove. He
was very particular about Sunday walking in gloves in any public place, and rushed
back to find it, leaving his sister waiting.
Presently he came tearing back and laughing.
"Did you find it?"
"Oh yes; it was in the
drawing-room. And what else do you
think I found? Why, Cherie
administering"-—and he pointed down his throat, and made a gulp with a
wild grimace of triumph. "On the
sly! Ha! ha!"
Anna felt as if the ground
had opened under her feet, but she answered gravely—-
"Poor Gerald went
through a great deal yesterday, and is quite knocked up, so no wonder he needs
some strengthening medicine."
"Strengthening
grandmother! Don't you think I know
better than that?" he cried, with a caper and a grin.
"Of course you had to
have some cordial when you were taken out of the water."
"And don't you know
what it was?"
"I know the fisher-people
carry stuff about with them in case of accidents."
"That's the way with
girls-—just to think one knows nothing at all."
"What do you know,
Adrian?"
"Know? Why, I haven't been about with Kit and Ted
Harewood for nothing! Jolly good larks it
is to see how all of you take for granted that a fellow never knew the taste of
anything but tea and milk-and-water."
"But what do you know
the taste of?" she asked, with an earnestness that provoked the boy to
tease and put on a boasting manner, so that she could not tell how much he was
pretending for the sake of amazing and tormenting her, in which he certainly
succeeded.
However, his attention was
diverted by coming round the corner to where there was a view of Anscombe Bay,
when he immediately began to fight his battles o'er again, and show where they
had been groping in the mud and seaweed in pursuit of sea-urchins, and stranded
star-fish, and crabs.
"And it wasn't a forest
after all, it was just a sell-—nothing but mud and weed, only Fergus would go
and poke in it, and there were horrid great rough stones and rocks too, and I
tumbled over one."
Anna here became conscious
that the whole place was the resort of the afternoon promenaders of Rockquay,
great and small, of all ranks and degrees, belonging to the "middle
class" or below it, and that they might themselves become the object of
attention; and she begged her brother to turn back and wait till they could
have the place to themselves.
"These are a disgusting
lot of cads," he agreed, "but there won't be such a jolly tide
another time. I declare I see the very
rock where I saw the sea-mouse-—out there! red and shiny at the top."
Here a well-dressed man, who
had just come up the Coast-guard path, put aside his pipe, and taking off his
hat, deferentially asked—-
"Have I the honour of
addressing Sir Adrian Vanderkist?"
Adrian replied with a
gracious nod and gesture towards his straw hat, and in another moment Anna
found him answering questions, and giving his own account of the adventure to
the inquirer, who, she had little doubt, was a reporter, and carrying his head,
if possible, higher in consequence as he told how Fergus Merrifield had
lingered over his stones, and all the rest after his own version. She did not hear the whole, having had to
answer the inquiries of one of the bicycle friends of the previous day, but
when her attention was free she heard—-
"And the young lady,
Sir Adrian?"
"Young lady! Thank goodness, we were not bothered with
any of that sort."
"Indeed, Sir Adrian, I
understood that there was a young lady, Miss Aurelia, that Master Merrifield
was lamenting, as if she had met with a watery grave."
"Ha! ha! Aralia was only the name of a bit of fossil
kind of a stick that Merrifield had us down there to find in the fossil forest. I'm sure I saw no forest, only bits of mud
and stuff! But he found a bit, sure
enough, and was ready to break his heart when he had to leave his bag behind
him on the rock. Aralia a young
lady! That's a good one."
He forgathered with a
school-fellow on the way home, and Anna heard little more.
The next day, however, there
arrived the daily local paper, addressed to Sir Adrian Vanderkist, Bart., and
it was opened by him at breakfast-time.
"I say! Look here! 'Dangerous Accident in Anscombe. A Youthful Baronet in peril!' What asses people are!" he added, with
an odd access of the gratified shame of seeing himself for the first time in
print. But he did not proceed to read
aloud; there evidently was something he did not like, and he was very near
pocketing it and rushing off headlong to school with it, if his aunt and Anna
had not entreated or commanded for it, when he threw it over with an
uncomplimentary epithet.
"Just what I was afraid
of when I saw the man talking to him!" exclaimed Anna. "Oh, listen!
"'The young Sir Adrian
Vanderkist, at present residing at St. Andrew's Rock with his aunt, Mrs.
Grinstead, and the Rev. E. C. Underwood, and who is a pupil at Mrs. Edgar's
academy for young gentlemen, was, we are informed, involved in the most
imminent danger, together with a son of General Sir Jasper Merrifield, K.G.C.,
a young gentleman whose remarkable scientific talent and taste appear to have
occasioned the peril of the youthful party, from whence they were rescued by
Gerald F. Underwood, Esq., of Vale Leston.'"
"What's all that?"
said Gerald F. Underwood, Esquire, sauntering in and kissing his aunt. "Good-morning. How is Uncle Clement this morning?"
"Much better; I think
he will be up by and by," answered Mrs. Grinstead.
"What bosh have you got
there? The reporters seized on their
prey, eh?"
"There's Sir
Jasper!" exclaimed Anna, who could see through the blinds from where she
sat.
Sir Jasper had driven over
with his little son, and, after leaving him at school, had come to inquire for
Mr. Underwood, and to obtain a fuller account of the accident, having already
picked up a paper and glanced at it.
"I am afraid my little
scamp led them into the danger," he said.
"Scientific taste forsooth!
Science is as good a reason as anything else for getting into
scrapes."
"Really," said
Gerald, "I can't say I think your boy came out the worst in it, though I
must own the Rockquay Advertiser bestows most of the honours of the affair on
the youthful baronet! You say he blew
his own trumpet," added Gerald, turning to Anna.
"The reporter came and
beset us," said Anna, in a displeased voice. "I did not hear all that passed, but of course Adrian told
him what he told me, only those people make things sound ridiculous."
"To begin with,"
said Gerald, "I don't think Fergus, or at any rate Davy Blake, was in
fault. They tried to go home in good
time, having an instinct for tides, but Adrian was chasing a sea-mouse or some
such game, and could not be brought back, and then he fell over a slippery rock,
and had to be dragged out of a hole, and by that time the channel of the
Anscombe stream was too deep, at least for him, who has been only too carefully
guarded from being amphibious."
"Oh! that did not
transpire at home," said Sir Jasper.
"Boys are so reserved."
Mrs. Grinstead and Anna
looked rather surprised. Anna even ventured—-
"I thought Fergus got
too absorbed."
"So did I," said
his father dryly. "And he did not
justify himself."
"M-—m-—m," went on
Gerald, skimming the article.
"Read it," cried
Anna. "You know none of us have
seen it."
Gerald continued—-
"'Their perilous
position having been observed from Anscombe cliffs, Mr. G. F. Underwood of Vale
Leston heroically' (i.e. humbugically) 'made his way out to their assistance,
while a boat was put off by the Coast-guard, and that of Mr. Carter, fisherman,
from Rockquay was launched somewhat later.'
We could not see either of them, you know. My eye, this is coming it strong! 'The young baronet generously insisted that the little fisher-boy,
David Blake, who had accompanied them, should first be placed in
safety-—'"
"Didn't he?"
exclaimed Anna. "I saw, and I
wondered, but I thought it was his doing."
"You saw?"
"Yes, in the
Coast-guard's telescope."
"Oh! That is a new feature in the case!"
"Then he did not
insist?" said Mrs. Grinstead.
"It was with the wrong
side of his mouth."
"But why did you send
the fisher-boy first, when after all his life was less important?"
exclaimed Anna, breaking forth at last.
"First, for the reason
that I strove to impress on 'the youthful baronet,' Noblesse oblige. Secondly, that Davy knew how to make his way
along the rocks, and also knew where to find the Preventive station. I could leave him to get on, as I could not
have done with the precious Adrian, and that gave a much better chance for us
all. It was swimming work by the time I
got back, and by that time I thought the best alternative for any of us was to
keep hold as long as we could, and then keep afloat as best we might till we
were picked up. Your boy was the hero
of it all. Adrian was so angry with me
for my disrespect that I could hardly have got him to listen to me if Fergus
had not made him understand, that to let himself be passive and be floated by
me till the boats came up was the only thing to be done. There was one howl when he had to let go his
beloved aralia, but he showed his soldier blood, and behaved most
manfully."
"I am most thankful to
hear it," said his father, "and especially thankful to you."
"Oh! there was not much
real danger," said Gerald lightly, "to any one who could swim."
"But Adrian could
not," said Anna. "Oh! Gerald,
what do we not owe to you?"
"I must be off,"
said Sir Jasper; "I must see about a new jacket for my boy. By the bye, do you know how the little Davy
fared in the matter of clothes?"
"Better than any of
us," said Gerald. "He was far
too sharp to go mud-larking in anything that would be damaged, and had his
boots safe laid up in a corner. I wish
mine were equally safe."
Sir Jasper's purchases were
not confined to boots and jacket, but as compensation for his hard words
included a certain cabinet full of drawers that had long been Fergus's
cynosure.
Anna and her aunt were much
concerned at what was said of Adrian, and still more at the boastful account
that he seemed to have given; but then something, as Mrs. Grinstead observed,
must be allowed for the reporter's satisfaction in having interviewed a live
baronet. Each of the parties concerned
had one hero, and if the Merrifields' was Fergus, to their own great surprise
and satisfaction, Aunt Cherry was very happy over her own especial boy, Gerald,
and certainly it was an easier task than to accept "the youthful
baronet" at his own valuation or that of the reporter.
Mrs. Grinstead considered whether
to try to make him less conceited about it, and show him his want of
truth. She consulted his uncle about
it, showing the newspaper, and telling, and causing Gerald to tell, the history
of the accident, which Clement had not been fit to hear all the day before.
He was still in bed, but
quite ready to attend to anything, and he laughed over the account, which she
illustrated by the discoveries she had made from the united witnesses.
"And is it not
delightful to see for once what Gerald really is?" she said.
"Yes, he seems to have
behaved gallantly," said his uncle; "and I won't say just what might
have been expected."
"One does expect
something of an Underwood," she said.
"Little Merrifield too,
who saw the danger coming, deserves more honour than he seems to have taken to
himself."
"Yes, he accepted
severity from that stern father of his, who seems very sorry for it now. It is curious how those boys' blood comes
out in the matter—-chasser de race."
"You must allow
something for breeding. Fergus had not
been the idol of a mother and sisters, and Gerald remembered his father in
danger."
"Oh, I can never be
glad enough that he has that remembrance of him! How like him he grows!
That unconscious imitation is so curious."
"Yes, the other day, when
I had been dozing, I caught myself calling out that he was whistling 'Johnny
Cope' so loud that he would be heard in the shop."
"He seems to be
settling down more happily here than I expected. I sometimes wonder if there is any attraction at Clipstone."
"No harm if there were,
except—-"
"Except what? Early marriage might be the very best
thing."
"Perhaps, though
sometimes I doubt whether it is well for a man to have gone through the chief
hopes and crises of life so soon. He
looks out for fresh excitement."
"There are so many
stages in life," said Geraldine, sighing.
"And with all his likenesses, Gerald is quite different from any of
you."
"So I suppose each
generation feels with those who succeed it.
Nor do I feel as if I understood the Universities to-day as I did
Cambridge thought of old. We can do
nothing but wait and pray, and put out a hand where we see cause."
"Where we see! It is the not seeing that is so trying. The being sure that there is more going on
within than is allowed to meet one's eye, and that one is only patronized as an
old grandmother—-quite out of it."
"I think the conditions
of life and thought are less simple than in our day."
"And to come to the
present. What is to be done about
Adrian-—the one who was not a hero, though he made himself out so?"
"Probably he really
thought so. He is a mere child, you
know, and it was his first adventure, before he has outgrown the days of
cowardice."
"He need not have told
stories."
"Depend upon it, he
hardly knew that he did so."
"He had the reporter to
help him certainly, and the 'Rockquay Advertiser' may not keep to the stern
veracity and simplicity of the 'Pursuivant'."
"And was proud to
interview a live baronet."
"Then what shall we
do-—Anna and I, I mean?"
"Write the simple facts
to Vale Leston, and then let it alone."
"To him?"
"Certainly. He would think your speaking mere
nagging. Preserve an ominous silence if
he speaks. His school-fellows will be
his best cure."
"Well, he did seem
ashamed!"
Clement was right. The boy's only mention of the paragraph was
once as "that beastly thing"; and Anna discovered from Valetta
Merrifield, that whatever satisfaction he might have derived from it had been
effectually driven out of him by the "fellows" at Mrs. Edgar's, who
had beset him with all their force of derision, called him nothing but the
"youthful Bart.," and made him ashamed as none of the opposite sex or
of maturer years could ever have succeeded in doing. Valetta said Fergus had tried to stop it, but there had certainly
been one effect, namely, that Adrian was less disposed to be
"Merry's" shadow than heretofore, and seemed inclined instead to take
up with the other seniors.
One thing, however, was
certain. Gerald enjoyed a good deal
more consideration among the Clipstone damsels than before. True, as Jasper said, it was only what any
one would have done; but he had done it, and proved himself by no means
inferior to "any one," and Fergus regarded him as a true hero, which
had a considerable effect on his sisters, the more perhaps because Jasper
derided their admiration.
They were doubly bent on
securing him for a contributor to the Mouse-trap. They almost thought of inviting him to their Browning afternoons,
but decided that he would not appreciate the feminine company, though he did so
often have a number of the 'Censor' to discuss it with Dolores, whenever they
met him.
The best actors in the
world, either for tragedy, comedy,
history, pastoral,
pastoral-comical, historical-pastoral.-—Hamlet.
The Matrons, otherwise
denominated lady patronesses, met in committee, Miss Mohun being of course the
soul and spirit of all, though Mrs. Ellesmere, as the wife of the rector of old
Rockstone Church, was the president, Lady Flight, one of the most interested,
was there, also Lady Merrifield, dragged in to secure that there was nothing
decided on contrary to old-world instincts, Mrs. Grinstead, in right of the
musical element that her brother promised, the beautiful Mrs. Henderson, to
represent the marble works, Mrs. Simmonds of the Cliff Hotel, the Mayoress, and
other notables.
The time was fixed for the
first week in August, the only one when engagements would permit the Rotherwood
family to be present for the opening, and when the regatta was apt to fill
Rockquay with visitors. The place was
to be the top of the cliffs of Rockstone, where the gardens of the Cliff Hotel,
of Beechcroft Cottage, Rocca Marina, and Carrara, belonging respectively to
Miss Mohun, Mr. White, and Captain Henderson, lay close together separated by
low walls, and each with a private door opening on a path along the top of the
cliffs. They could easily be made to
communicate together, by planks laid over the boundaries, and they had lawns
adapted for tents, etc., and Rocca Marina rejoiced in a shrubbery and
conservatories that were a show in themselves, and would be kindly lent by Mr.
and Mrs. White, though health compelled them to be absent and to resort to
Gastein. The hotel likewise had a large
well-kept garden, where what Mrs. Simmonds called a pavilion, "quite
mediaeval," was in course of erection, and could be thrown open on the
great day.
It was rather
"tea-gardenish," but it could be made available for the
representation of The Outlaw's Isle. Lancelot
made a hurried visit to study the place, and review the forces, and decided
that it was practicable. There could be
a gallery at one end for the spectators, and the outer end toward the bay could
be transformed into a stage, with room for the orchestra, and if the weather
were favourable the real sea could be shown in the background. The scenes had been painted by the clever
fingers at Vale Leston. It remained to
cast the parts. Lancelot himself would
be Prospero, otherwise Alaster Maclan, and likewise conductor, bringing with
him the school-master of Vale Leston, who could supply his part as conductor
when he was on the stage. His little
boy Felix would be Ariel, the other elves could be selected from the
school-children, and the local Choral Society would supply the wreckers and the
wrecked. But the demur was over Briggs,
a retired purser, who had always had a monopoly of sea-songs, and who looked on
the boatswain as his right, and was likely to roar every one down. Ferdinand would be Gerald, under the name of
Angus, but the difficulty was his Miranda-—Mona as she was called. The Vanderkists could not be asked to
perform in public, nor would Sir Jasper Merrifield have consented to his
daughters doing so, even if they could have sung, and it had been privately
agreed that none of the other young ladies of Rockquay could be brought
forward, especially as there was no other grown-up female character.
"My wife might
undertake it," said Lancelot, "but her voice is not her strong point,
and she would be rather substantial for a Miranda."
"It would be rather
like finding a mother instead of a wife—-with all respect to my Aunt
Daisy," laughed Gerald.
"By the bye, I'm sure I
once heard a voice, somewhere down by the sea, that would be perfect,"
exclaimed Lance. "Sweet and
powerful, fresh and young, just what is essential. I heard it when I was in quest of crabs with my boy."
"I know!"
exclaimed Gerald, "the Little Butterfly, as they call her!"
"At a cigar-shop,"
said Lance.
"Mrs. Schnetterling's. Not very respectable," put in Lady
Flight.
"Decidedly attractive
to the little boys, though," said Gerald.
"Sweets, fishing-tackle, foreign stamps, cigars. I went in once to see whether Adrian was up
to mischief there, and the Mother Butterfly looked at me as if I had seven
heads; but I just got a glimpse of the girl, and, as my uncle says, she would
make an ideal Mona, or Miranda."
"Lydia
Schnetterling," exclaimed Mr. Flight.
"She is a very pretty girl with a nice voice. You remember her, Miss Mohun, at our
concerts? A lovely fairy."
"I remember her
well. I thought she was foreign, and a
Roman Catholic."
"So her mother
professes-—a Hungarian. The school
officer sent her to school, and she did very well there, Sunday-school and all,
and was a monitor. She was even
confirmed. Her name is really Ludmilla,
and Lida is the correct contraction.
But when I wanted her to be apprenticed as a pupil-teacher, the mother
suddenly objected that she is a Roman Catholic, but I very much doubt the
woman's having any religion at all. I
wrote to the priest about her, but I believe he could make nothing of her. Still, Lydia is a very nice girl-—comes to
church, and has not given up the Choral Society."
"She is a remarkably
nice good girl," added Mrs. Henderson.
"She came to me, and entreated that I would speak for her to be
taken on at the marble works."
"You have her
there?"
"Yes; but I am much
afraid that her talents do not lie in the way of high promotion, and I think if
she does not get wages enough to satisfy her mother, she is in dread of being
made to sing at public-houses and music-halls."
"That nice refined
girl!"
"Yes; I am sure the
idea is dreadful to her."
"Could you not put her
in the way of getting trained?" asked Gerald of his uncle.
"I must hear her
first."
"I will bring her up to
the Choral Society tonight," said Mr. Flight.
"What did you call
her?" said Geraldine.
"Some German or foreign
name, Schnetterling, and the school calls her Lydia."
At that moment the council
was invaded, as it sat in Miss Mohun's drawing-room, upon rugs and wicker
chairs, to be refreshed with tea. In
burst a whole army of Merrifields, headed by little Primrose, now a tall girl
of twelve years old, more the pet of the family than any of her elders had been
allowed to be. Her cry was—-
"Oh, mamma, mamma,
here's the very one for the captain of the buccaneers!"
The startling announcement
was followed by the appearance of a tall, stalwart, handsome young man of a
certain naval aspect, whom Lady Merrifield introduced as Captain Armytage.
"We must congratulate
him, Gillian," she said. "I
see you are gazetted as commander."
Primrose, who had something
of the licence of the youngest,
observed—-
"We have been telling
him all about it. He used to be Oliver
Cromwell in 'How Do You Like It?' and now he will be a buccaneer!"
"Oliver Cromwell, you
silly child!" burst out Gillian, with a little shake, while the rest fell
into fits of laughing.
"I fear it was a less
distinguished part," said Captain Armytage.
"May I understand that
you will help us?" said Lancelot.
"I heard of you at Devereux Castle."
"I don't think you
heard much of my capabilities, especially musical ones. I was the stick of the party," said
Captain Armytage.
It was explained that
Captain Armytage had actually arrived that afternoon at the Cliff Hotel, and
had walked over to call at Clipstone, whence he found the young ladies setting
out to walk to Rockstone. He could not
deny that he had acted and sung, though, as he said, his performance in both
cases was vile. Little Miss Primrose
had most comically taken upon her to patronize him, and to offer him as
buccaneer captain had been a freak of her own, hardly to be accounted for,
except that Purser Briggs's unsuitableness had been discussed in her presence.
"Primrose is getting to
be a horrid little forward thing," observed Gillian to her aunt.
"A child of the
present," said Miss Mohun.
"Infant England! But her
suggestion seems to be highly opportune."
"I don't believe he can
sing," growled Gillian, "and it will be just an excuse for his
hanging about here."
There was something in
Gillian's "savagery" which gave Aunt Jane a curious impression, but
she kept it to herself.
Late in the evening Lance
appeared in his sister's drawing-room
with—-
"I have more hopes of
it. I did not think it was feasible
when Anna wrote to me, but I see my way better now. That parson, Flight, has a good notion of drilling, and that
recruit of the little Merrifield girl, Captain Armytage, is worth having."
"If he roared like a
sucking dove we would have him, only to silence that awful boatswain,"
said Gerald; "and as to the little Cigaretta, she is a born prima
donna."
"Your Miranda? Are you content with her?" said his
aunt.
"She is to the manner
born. Lovely voice, acts like a dragon,
and has an instinct how to stand and how to hold her hands."
"Coming in drolly with
her prim dress and bearing. Though she
was dreadfully frightened," said Lance.
"Being half-foreign accounts for something, I suppose, but it is
odd how she reminds me of some one. No
doubt it is of some singer at a concert.
What did they say was her name?"
"Ludmilla
Schnetterling, the Little Butterfly they call her. Foreign on both sides apparently," said Gerald. "Those dainty ankles never were bred on
English clods."
"I wonder what her
mother is," said Mrs. Grinstead.
"By the bye, I think it
must have been her mother that I saw that morning when little Felix dragged me
to a cigar-shop in quest of an ornamental crab-—a handsome, slatternly hag sort
of woman, who might have been on the stage," said Lance.
"Sells fishing-tackle,
twine, all sorts," came from Adrian.
"Have you been
there?" asked his sister, rather disturbed.
"Of course! All the fellows go! It is the jolliest place for"-—he
paused a moment—-"candies and ginger-beer."
"I should have thought
there were nicer places!" sighed Anna.
"You have yet to learn
that there is a period of life when it is a joy to slip out of as much
civilization as possible," said Lance, putting his sentence in involved
form so as to be the less understood by the boys.
"Did you say that
Flight had got hold of them?" asked Clement.
"Hardly. They are R.C.'s, it seems; and as to the
Mother Butterfly, I should think there was not much to get hold of in her; but
Mrs. Henderson takes interest in her marble-workers, and the girl is the sort
of refined, impressible creature that one longs to save, if possible. To-morrow I am going to put you all through
your parts, Master Gerald, so don't you be out of the way."
"One submits to one's
fate," said Gerald, "hoping that virtue may be its own reward, as it
is in the matter of 'The Inspector's Tour', which the 'Censor' accepts, really
enthusiastically for a paper, though the Mouse-trap would have found it-—what
shall I say?-—a weasel in their snare."
"Does it indeed?"
cried Anna, delighted. "I saw
there was a letter by this last post."
"Aye-—invites more from
the same pen," he replied lazily.
"Too much of weasel for
the 'Pursuivant' even?" said Geraldine.
"Yes," said Lance;
"these young things are apt to tear our old traps and flags to
pieces. By the bye, who is this Captain
Armytage, who happily will limit Purser Briggs to 'We split, we split, we
split,' or something analogous?"
"I believe," said
Gerald, "that he joined the Wills-of-the-Wisp, that company which was got
up by Sir Lewis Willingham, and played at Devereux Castle a year or two
ago. Some one told me they were
wonderfully effective for amateurs."
"That explains the
acquaintance with Lady Merrifield," said Mrs. Grinstead.
"Oh, yes," said
Anna. "Mysie told me all about it;
and how Mr. David Merrifield married the nicest of them all, and how much they
liked this Captain Armytage."
"Was not Mysie there
when he arrived?"
"No, she was gone to
see the Henderson children, but Gillian looked a whole sheaf of daggers at
him. You know what black brows Gillian
has, and she drew them down like thunder," and Anna imitated as well as
her fair open brows would permit, "turning as red as fire all the
time."
"That certainly means
something," said Geraldine, laughing.
"I should like to see
Gillian in love," laughed Anna; "and I really think she is afraid of
it, she looked so fierce."
The next evening there was
time for a grand review in the parish school-room of all possible performers on
the spot. In the midst, however, a
sudden fancy flashed across Lancelot that there was something curiously similar
between those two young people who occupied the stage, or what was meant to be
such. Their gestures corresponded to
one another, their voices had the same ring, and their eyes wore almost of the
same dark colour. Now Gerald's eyes had
always been the only part of him that was not Underwood, and had never quite
accorded with his fair complexion.
"Hungarian, I suppose,"
said Lance to himself, but he was not quite satisfied.
What struck him as strange
was that though dreadfully shy and frightened when off the stage, as soon as
she appeared upon it, though not yet in costume, she seemed to lose all
consciousness that she was not Mona.
Perhaps Mrs. Henderson could
have told him. Her husband being
manager and partner at Mr. White's marble works, she had always taken great
interest in the young women employed, had actually attended to their instruction,
assisted in judging of their designs, and used these business relations to
bring them into inner contact with her, so that her influence had become very
valuable. She was at the little room
which she still kept at the office, when there was a knock at the door, and
"Miss Schnetterling" begged to speak to her. She felt particularly tender towards the
girl, who was evidently doing her best in a trying and dangerous position, and
after the first words it came out—-
"Oh, Mrs. Henderson, do
you think I must be Mona?"
"Have you any real
objection, Lydia? Mr. Flight and all of
them seem to wish it."
"Yes, and I can't bear
not to oblige Mr. Flight, who has been so good, so good!" cried Lydia,
with a foreign gesture, clasping her hands.
"Indeed, perhaps my mother would not let me off. That is what frightens me. But if you or some real lady could put me
aside they could not object."
"I do not understand
you, my dear. You would meet with no
unpleasantness from any one concerned, and you can be with the fairy
children. Are you shy? You were not so in the fairy scenes last
winter-—you acted very nicely."
"Oh yes, I liked it
then. It carries me away; but-—oh! I am
afraid!"
"Please tell me, my
dear."
Lydia lowered her voice.
"I must tell you, Mrs.
Henderson, mother was a singer in public once, and a dancer; and oh! they were
so cruel to her, beat her, and starved her, and ill-used her. She used to tell me about it when I was very
little, but now I have grown older, and the people like my voice, she is quite
changed. She wants me to go and sing at
the Herring-and-a-Half, but I won't, I won't-—among all the tipsy men. That was why she would not let me be a
pupil-teacher, and why she will not see a priest. And now-—now I am sure she has a plan in her head. If I do well at this operetta, and people
like me, I am sure she will get the man at the circus to take me, by force
perhaps, and then it would be all her life over again, and I know that was
terrible."
Poor Ludmilla burst into
tears.
"Nay, if she suffered
so much she would not wish to expose you to the same."
"I don't know. She is in trouble about the shop-—the
cigars. Oh! I should not have
told! You won't-—you won't—-Mrs.
Henderson?"
"No, you need not fear,
I have nothing to do with that."
"I don't think,"
Lydia whispered again, "that she cares for me as she used to do when I was
a little thing. Now that I care for my
duty, and all that you and Mr. Flight have taught me, she is angry, and laughs
at English notions. I was in hopes when
I came to work here that my earnings would have satisfied her, but they don't,
and I don't seem to get on."
Mrs. Henderson could not say
that her success was great, but she ventured as much as to tell her that
Captain Henderson could prevent any attempt to send her away without her
consent.
"Oh! but if my mother
went too you could not hinder it."
"Are you sixteen, my
dear? Then you could not be taken
against your will."
"Not till
December. And oh! that gentleman, the
conductor, he knew all about it, I could see, and by and by I saw him lingering
about the shop, as if he wanted to watch me."
"Mr. Lancelot
Underwood! Oh, my dear, you need not be
afraid of him, he is a brother of Mrs. Grinstead's, a connection of Miss
Mohun's; and though he is such a musician, it is quite as an amateur. But, Lydia, I do think that if you sing your
best, he may very likely be able to put you in a way to make your talent
available so as to satisfy your mother, without leading to anything so
undesirable and dangerous as a circus."
"Then you think I
ought-—"
"It is a dangerous
thing to give advice, but really, my dear, I do think more good is likely to
come of this than harm."
The wisest aunt telling the
saddest tale.
Midsummer Night's Dream.
The earlier proofs of the
Mouse-trap were brought by Lance, who had spent more time in getting them into
shape than his wife approved, and they were hailed with rapture by the young
ladies on seeing themselves for the first time in print. As to Gerald, he had so long been bred—-as
it were-—to journalism that, young as he was, he had caught the trick, and 'The
Inspector's Tour' had not only been welcomed by the 'Censor', but portions had
been copied into other papers, and there was a proposal of publishing it in a
separate brochure. It would have made
the fortune of the Mouse-trap, if it had not been so contrary to its
principles, and it had really been sent to them in mischief, together with The
'Girton Girl', of which some were proud, though when she saw it in print, with
a lyre and wreath on the page, sober Mysie looked grave.
"Do you think it
profane to parody Jane Taylor?" said Gerald.
"No, but I thought it
might hurt some people's feelings, and discourage them, if we laugh at the High
School."
"Why, Dolores goes to
give lectures there," exclaimed Valetta.
"Nobody is discouraged
by a little good-humoured banter," said Gillian. "Nobody with any stuff in them."
"There must be some
training in chaff though," said Gerald, "or they don't know how to
take it."
"And in point of
fact," said Dolores, "the upper tradesmen's daughters come off with
greater honours in the High School than do the young gentlewomen."
"Very wholesome for the
young Philistines," said Gerald.
"The daughters of self-made men may well surpass in energy those
settled on their lees."
Gerald and Dolores were
standing with their backs to the wall of Anscombe Church, which Jasper
Merrifield and Mysie were zealously photographing, the others helping—-or
hindering.
"I thought upper
tradesfolk were the essence of Philistines," returned Dolores.
"The elder
generation-—especially if he is the son of the energetic man. The younger are more open to ideas."
"The stolid
Conservative is the one who has grown up while his father was making his
fortune, the third generation used to be the gentleman, now he is the man who
is tired of it."
"Tired of it,
aye!" with a sigh.
"Why you are a man with
a pedigree!" she returned.
"Pedigrees don't
hinder-—what shall I call it?—-the sense of being fettered."
"One lives in
fetters," she exclaimed. "And
the better one likes one's home, the harder it is to shake them off."
He turned and looked full at
her, then exclaimed, "Exactly," and paused, adding, "I wonder
what you want. Has it a form?"
"Oh yes, I mean to give
lectures. I should like to see the
world, and study physical science in every place, then tell the next about
it. I read all I can, and I think I
shall get consent to give some elementary lectures at the High School, though
Uncle Jasper does not half like it, but I must get some more training to do the
thing rightly. I thought of University
College. Could you get me any
information about it?"
"Easily; but you'll
have to conquer the horror of the elders."
"I know. They think one must learn atheism and all
sorts of things there."
"You might go in for
physical science at Oxford or Cambridge."
"I expect that is all
my father would allow. In spite of the
colonies, he has all the old notions about women, and would do nothing Aunt
Lily really protested against."
"You are lucky to have
a definite plan and notion to work for.
Now fate was so unkind as to make me a country squire, and not only
that, but one bound down, like Gulliver among the Liliputians, with all manner
of cords by all the dear good excellent folks, who look on that old mediaeval
den with a kind of fetish-worship, sprung of their having been kept out of it
so long, and it would be an utter smash of all their hearts if I uttered a
profane word against it. I would as
soon be an ancient Egyptian drowning a cat as move a stone of it. It is a lovely sort of ancient Pompeii, good
to look at now and then, but not to be bound down to."
"Like Beechcroft Court,
a fossil. It is very well there are
such places."
"Yes, but not to be the
hope of them. It is my luck. If my eldest uncle, who had toiled in a
bookseller's shop all his youth and reigned like a little king, had not gone
and got killed in a boating accident, there he would be the ruling Sir Roger de
Coverley of the county, a pillar of Church and State, and I should be a free
man."
"Won't they let you go
about, and see everything?"
"Oh yes, I am welcome
to do a little globe-trotting. They are
no fools; if they were I should not care half so much; but wherever I went,
there would be a series of jerks from my string, and not having an integument
of rhinoceros hide, I could not disregard them without a sore more raw than I
care to carry about. After all, it is
only a globe, and one gets back to the same place again."
"Men have so many
openings."
"I'm not rich enough
for Parliament, and if I were, maybe it would be worse for their hearts,"
he said, with a sigh.
"There's journalism, a
great power."
"Yes, but to put my
name to all I could—-and long to say-—would be an equal horror to the dear
folks."
"Yet you are helping on
this concern."
"True, but partly pour
passer le temps, partly because I really want to hear 'The Outlaws Isle'
performed, and all under protest that the windmill will soon be swept away by
the stream."
"Indeed, yes,"
cried Dolores. "They hope to
regulate the stream. They might as well
hope to regulate Mississippi."
"Well-chosen
simile! The current is slow and
sluggish, but irresistible."
"Better than stagnating
or sticking fast in the mud."
"Though the mud may be
full of fair blossoms and sweet survivals," said Gerald sadly.
"Oh yes, people in the
old grooves are delightful," said Dolores, "but one can't live, like
them, with a heart in G. F. S., like my Aunt Jane, really the cleverest of any
of us! Or like Mysie, not stupid, but
wrapped up in her classes, just scratching the surface. Now, if I went in for good works I would go
to the bottom-—down to the slums."
"Slums are one's chief
interest," said Gerald; "but no doubt it will soon be the same story
over and over, and only make one wish—-"
"What?"
"That there could be a
revolution before I am of age."
"What's that?"
cried Primrose, coming up as he spoke.
"A revolution?"
"Yes, guillotines and
all, to cut off your head in Rotherwood Park," said Gerald lightly.
"Oh! you don't really
mean it."
"Not that sort,"
said Dolores. "Only the coming of
the coquecigrues."
"They are in 'The Water
Babies'," said Primrose, mystified.
Each of those two liked to
talk to the other as a sort of fellow-captive, solacing themselves with
discussions over the 'Censor' and its fellows.
Love is not often the first thought, even where it lurks in modern
intellectual intercourse between man and maid; and though Kitty Varley might
giggle, the others thought the idea only worthy of her. Aunt Jane, however, smelt out the notion,
and could not but communicate it to her sister, though adding—-
"I don't believe in it:
Dolores is in love with Physiology, and the boy with what Jasper calls
Socialist maggots, but not with each other, unless they work round in some
queer fashion."
However, Lady Merrifield,
feeling herself accountable for Dolores, was anxious to gather ideas about
Gerald from his aunt, with whom she was becoming more and more intimate. She was more than twenty years the senior,
and the thread of connection was very slender, but they suited one another so
well that they had become Lilias and Geraldine to one another. Lady Merrifield had preserved her
youthfulness chiefly from having had a happy home, unbroken by family sorrows
or carking cares, and with a husband who had always taken his full share of
responsibility.
"Your nephew's
production has made a stir," said she, when they found themselves alone
together.
"Yes, poor
boy." Then answering the tone
rather than the words, "I suppose it is the lot of one generation to be
startled by the next. There is a good
deal of change in the outlook."
"Yes," said Lady
Merrifield. "The young ones,
especially the youngest, seem to have a set of notions of their own that I
cannot always follow."
"Exactly," said
Geraldine eagerly.
"You feel the
same? To begin with, the laws of young
ladyhood-—maidenliness-—are a good deal relaxed-—"
"There I am not much of
a judge. I never had any young ladyhood,
but I own that the few times I went out with Anna I have been surprised, and
more surprised at what I heard from her sister Emily."
"What we should have
thought simply shocking being tolerated now."
"Just so; and we are
viewed as old duennas for not liking it.
I should say, however, that it is not, or has not, been a personal
trouble with me. Anna's passion is for
her Uncle Clement, and she has given up the season on his account, though Lady
Travis Underwood was most anxious to have her; and as to Emily, though she is
obliged to go out sometimes, she hates it, and has a soul set on slums and
nursing."
"You mean that the
style of gaieties revolts a nice-minded girl?"
"Partly. Perhaps such as the Travis Underwoods used
to take part in, rather against their own likings, poor things, are much less
restrained for the young people than what would come in your daughters'
way."
"Perhaps; though Lady
Rotherwood has once or twice in country-houses had to protect her daughter, to
the great disgust of the other young people.
That is one development that it is hard to meet, for it is difficult to
know where old-fashioned distaste is the motive, and where the real principle
of modesty. Though to me the question
is made easy, for Sir Jasper would never hear of cricket for his daughters,
scarcely of hunting, and we have taken away Valetta and Primrose from the
dancing-classes since skirt-dancing has come in; but I fear Val thinks it
hard."
"Such things puzzle my
sisters at Vale Leston. They are part
of the same spirit of independence that sends girls to hospitals or medical
schools."
"Or colleges, or
lecturing. Dolores is wild to lecture,
and I see no harm in her trying her wings at the High School on some safe
subject, if her father in New Zealand does not object, though I am glad it has
not occurred to any of my own girls."
"Sir Jasper would not
like it?"
"Certainly not; but if
my brother consents he will not mind it for Dolores. She is a good girl in the main, but even mine have very different
ideals from what we had."
"Please tell me. I see it a little, and I have been thinking
about it."
"Well, perhaps you will
laugh, but my ideal work was Sunday-schools."
"Are not they Miss
Mohun's ideal still?"
"Oh yes, infinitely
developed, and so they are my cousin Florence's-—Lady Florence Devereux; but
the young ones think them behind the times.
I remember when every girl believed her children the prettiest and
cleverest in nature, showed off her Sunday-school as her pride and treasure,
and composed small pink books about them, where the catastrophe was either
being killed by accident, or going to live in the clergyman's nursery. Now, those that teach do so simply as a duty
and not a romance."
"And the difficulty is
to find those who will teach," said Geraldine. "One thing is, that the children really require better
teaching."
"That is quite
true. My girls show me their
preparation work, and I see much that I should not have thought of teaching the
Beechcroft children. But all the
excitement of the matter has gone off."
"I know. The Vale Leston girls do it as their needful
work, not with their hearts and enthusiasm.
I expect an enthusiasm cannot be expected to last above a generation and
perhaps a half."
"Very likely. A more indifferent thing; you will laugh,
but my enthusiasm was for chivalry, Christian chivalry, half symbolic. History was delightful to me for the search
for true knights. I had lists of them,
drawings if possible, but I never could indoctrinate anybody with my
affection. Either history is only a
lesson, or they know a great deal too much, and will prove to you that the Cid
was a ruffian, and the Black Prince not much better."
"And are you allowed
the 'Idylls of the King'?"
"Under protest, now
that the Mouse-trap has adopted Browning for weekly reading and
discussion. Tennyson is almost put on
the same shelf with Scott, whom I love better than ever. Is it progress?"
"Well, I suppose it is,
in a way."
"But is it the right
way?"
"That's what I want to
see."
"Now listen. When our young men, my brothers-—especially
my very dear brother Claude and his contemporaries, Rotherwood is the only one
left—-were at Oxford, they got raised into a higher atmosphere, and came home
with beautiful plans and hopes for the Church, and drew us up with them; but
now the University seems just an ordeal for faith to go through."
"I should think there
was less of outward temptation, but more of subtle trial. And then the whole system has altered since
the times you are speaking of, when the old rules prevailed, and the great
giants of Church renewal were there!" said Geraldine.
"You belong to the
generation whom they trained, and who are now passing away. My father was one who grew up then."
"We live on their
spirit still."
"I hope so. I never knew much about Cambridge till
Clement went there, but it had the same influence on him. Indeed, all our home had that one thought
ever since I can remember. Clement and
Lance grew up in it."
"But you will forgive
me. These younger men either go very, very
much further than we older ones dreamt of, or they have flaws in their faith,
and sometimes-—which is the strangest difficulty—-the vehement observance and
ritual with flaws beneath in their faith perhaps, or their loyalty—-Socialist
fancies."
"There is
impatience," said Geraldine.
"The Church progress has not conquered all the guilt and misery in
the world."
"Who said it
would?"
"None of us; but these
younger ones fancy it is the Church's fault, instead of that of her members'
failures, and so they try to walk in the light of the sparks that they have
kindled."
"Altruism as they call
it—-love of the neighbour without love of God."
"It may lead that
way."
"Does it?"
"Perhaps we are the
impatient ones now," said Geraldine, "in disliking the young ones'
experiments, and wanting to bind them to our own views."
"Then you look on with
toleration but with distrust."
"Distrust of myself as
well as of the young ones, and trying not to forget that 'one good custom may
corrupt the world,' so it may be as well that the pendulum should swing."
"The pendulum, but not
its axis-—faith!"
"No; and of my boy's
mainspring of faith I do feel sure, and of his real upright
steadiness."
Lady Merrifield asked no
more, but could wait.
But is not each generation a
terra incognita to the last? A question
which those feel most decidedly who stand on the border-land of both, with love
and sympathy divided between the old and the new, clinging to the one, and
fearing to alienate the other.
If you heed my warning
It will save you much.-—A.
A. PROCTOR.
Clement Underwood was so
much better as to be arrived at taking solitary rides and walks, these suiting
him better than having companions, as he liked to go his own pace, and preferred
silence. His sister had become much
engrossed with her painting, and saw likewise that in this matter of exercise
it was better to let him go his own way, and he declared that this time of
thought and reading was an immense help to him, restoring that balance of life
which he seemed to himself to have lost in the whirl of duties at St. Matthew's
after Felix's death.
The shore, with the fresh,
monotonous plash of the waves, when the tide served, was his favourite
resort. He could stand still and look out
over the expanse of ripples, or wander on, as he pleased, watching the
sea-gulls float along—-
"As though life's only call and care
Were graceful motion."
There had been a somewhat
noisy luncheon, for Edward Harewood, a midshipman in the Channel Fleet, which
was hovering in the offing, had come over on a day's leave with Horner, a
messmate whose parents lived in the town.
He was a big lad, a year older than Gerald, and as soon as a little awe
of Uncle Clement and Aunt Cherry had worn off, he showed himself of the
original Harewood type, directing himself chiefly to what he meant to be
teasing Gerald about Vale Leston and Penbeacon.
"All the grouse there
were on the bit of moor are snapped up."
"Very likely,"
said Gerald coolly.
"Those precious
surveyors and engineers that Walsh brings down can give an account of
them! As soon as you come of age,
you'll have to double your staff of keepers, I can tell you."
"Guardians of ferae
naturae," said Gerald.
"I thought your father
did all that was required in that line," said Clement.
"Not since duffers and
land-lubbers have been marauding over Penbeacon-—aye, and elsewhere. What would you say to an engineer poaching
away one of the august house of Vanderkist?"
"The awful cad! I'd soon show him what I thought of his
cheek," cried Adrian, with a flourish of his knife.
"Ha, ha! I bet that he will be shooting over Ironbeam
Park long before you are of age."
"I shall shoot him,
then," cried Adrian.
"Not improbably there
will be nothing else to shoot by that time," quietly said Gerald.
"I shall have a keeper
in every lodge, and bring up four or five hundred pheasants every year,"
boasted the little baronet, quite alive to the pride of possession, though he
had never seen Ironbeam in his life.
Edward laughed a "Don't
you wish you may get it," and the others, who knew very well the futility
of the poor boy's expectations, even if Gerald's augury were not fulfilled,
hastened to turn away the conversation to plans for the afternoon. Anna asked the visitor if he would ride out
with her and Gerald to Clipstone or to the moor, and was relieved when he
declined, saying he had promised to meet Horner.
"You will come in to
tea at five?" said his aunt, "and bring him if you like."
"Thanks awfully, but we
hardly can. We have to start from the
quay at six sharp."
All had gone their several
ways, and Clement, after the heat of the day, was pacing towards a secluded
cove out of an inner bay which lay nearer than Anscombe Cove, but was not much frequented. However, he smelt tobacco, and heard sounds
of boyish glee, and presently saw Adrian and Fergus Merrifield, bare-legged,
digging in the mud.
"Ha! youngsters! Do you know the tide has turned? I thought you had had enough of that."
"I thought I might find
my aralia!" sighed Fergus.
"The tide was almost as low."
Just then there resounded
from behind a projecting rock a peal of undesirable singing, a shout of
laughter, and an oath, with—-
"Holloa, those little
beasts of teetotallers have hooked it."
There were confused
cries-—"Haul 'em back! Drench
'em. Give 'em a roll in the mud!"
and Adrian shrank behind his uncle, taking hold of his coat, as there burst
from behind the rock a party of boys, headed by the two cadets, all shouting
loudly, till brought to a sudden standstill by the sight of "Parson! By Jove!" as the Horner mid muttered,
taking out his pipe, while Edward Harewood mumbled something about
"Horner's brother's tuck-out."
One or two other boys were picking up the remains of the feast, which
had been on lobsters, jam tarts, clotted cream, and the like delicacies dear to
the juvenile mind. The two biggest
school-boys came forward, one voluble and thick of speech about Horner's
tuck-out, and "I assure you, sir, it is nothing—-not a taste. Never thought of such-—" Just then the other lad, staggering about,
had almost lurched over into the deepening channel; but Clement caught him by
the collar and held him fast, demanding in a low voice, very terrible to his
hearers—-
"Where does this poor
boy live?"
It was Adrian who answered.
"Devereux
Buildings."
"You two, Adrian and
Fergus, run to the quay and fetch a cab as near this place as it can
come," said Clement. "You
little fellows, you had better run home at once. I hope you will take warning by the shame and disgrace of this
spectacle."
The boys were glad enough to
disperse, being terrified by the condition of the prisoner, as well as by the
detection; but the two who were encumbered with the baskets containing the
bottles, jam-pots, and tin of cream remained, and so did the two young sailors,
Horner saying civilly—-
"You'll not be hard on
the kids, sir, for just a spree carried a little too far."
"I certainly shall not
be hard on the children, whom you seem to have tempted," was the answer as
they moved along; and as the younger Horner turned towards a little shop near
the end of the steps to restore the goods, he asked-—"Were you supplied
from hence?"
"Yes," said
Horner, who was perhaps hardly sober enough for caution. "Mother Butterfly is a jolly old
soul."
Looking up. Clement saw no licence to sell spirituous
liquors under the name of Sarah Schnetterling, tobacconist. The window had the placard 'Ici on parle
Francais', and was adorned in a tasteful manner with ornamental pipes,
fishing-rods and flies, jars of sweets, sheets of foreign stamps, pictorial
advertisements of innocuous beverages.
A woman with black grizzling hair, fashionably dressed, flashing dark
eyes, long gold ear-rings, gold beads and gaudy attire, came out to reclaim her
property. A word or two passed about
payment, during which Clement had a strange thrill of puzzled
recollection. The bottles bore the
labels of raspberry vinegar and lemonade, but he had seen too much not to say—-
"You drive a dangerous
trade."
"Ah, sir, young people
will be gourmands," she said, with a foreign accent. "Ah, that poor young gentleman is very
ill. Will he not come in and lie down
to recover?"
"No, thank you,"
said Clement. "A carriage is
coming to take him home."
Something about the fat in
the fire was passing between the cadets, and the younger of them began to
repeat that he had come for his brother's birthday, and that he feared they had
brought the youngsters into a scrape by carrying the joke too far.
"I have nothing to say
to you, sir," said the Vicar of St. Matthew's, looking very majestic,
"except that it is time you were returning to your ship. As to you," turning to Edward Harewood,
"I can only say that if you are aware of the peculiar circumstances of Adrian
Vanderkist, your conduct can only be called fiendish."
Fergus and Adrian came
running up with tidings that the cab was waiting. Edward Harewood stood sullen, but the other lad said—-
"Unlucky. We are sorry to have got the little fellows
into trouble."
He held out his hand, and
Clement did not refuse it, as he did that of his own nephew. Still, there was a certain satisfaction at
his heart as he beheld the clear, honest young faces of the other two boys, and
he bade Adrian run home and wait for him, saying to Fergus—-
"You seem to have been
a good friend to my little nephew.
Thank you."
Fergus coloured up,
speechless between pleasure at the warm tone of commendation and the
obligations of school-boy honour, nor, with young Campbell on their hands, was
there space for questions. That youth
subsided into a heavy doze in the cab, and so continued till the arrival at No.
7, Devereux Buildings, where a capable-looking maid-servant opened the door,
and he was deposited into her hands, the Vicar leaving his card with his
present address, but feeling equal to nothing more, and hardly able to speak.
He drove home, finding his
nephew in the doorway. Signing to the
maid to pay the driver, and to the boy to follow him, he reached his study, and
sank into his easy-chair, Adrian opening frightened eyes and saying—-
"I'll call Sibby."
"No-—that bottle-—drop
to there," signing to the mark on the glass with his nail.
After a pause, while he held
fast the boy, so to speak, with his eyes, he said—-
"Thank you, dear
lad."
"Uncle Clement,"
said Adrian then, "we weren't doing anything. Merrifield thought his old bit of auralia, or whatever he calls
it, was there."
"I saw—-I saw, my
boy. To find you-—as you were, made me
most thankful. You must have resisted. Tell me, were you of this party, or did you
come on them by accident?"
"Horner asked me,"
said Adrian, twisting from one leg to another.
Clement saw the crisis was
come which he had long expected, and rejoiced at the form it had taken, though
he knew he should suffer from pursuing the subject.
"Adrian," he said,
"I am much pleased with you. I
don't want to get you into a row, but I should be much obliged if you would
tell me how all this happened."
"It wouldn't,"
returned Adrian, "but for that Ted and the other chap."
"Do you mean that there
would have been none of this-—drinking-—but for them? Don't be afraid to tell me all.
Was the stuff all got from that Mrs. Schnetter—-?"
"Mother
Butterfly's? Oh yes. She keeps bottles of grog with those labels,
and it is such a lark for her to be even with the gangers that our fellows
generally get some after cricket, or for a tuck-out."
"Not Fergus
Merrifield?"
"Oh no; he's captain,
you know, but he is two years younger than Campbell and Horner, and they can't
bear him, and when he made a jaw about it—-he can jaw awfully, you know-—and he
is stuck up, and Horner major swore he would make him know his bearings-—"
"I wonder he was there
at all."
"Well, Horner asked
him, and he can't get those fossils that were lost out of his head, and he
thought they might be washed up. He
said too, he knew they would be up to something if he wasn't there."
"Oh!" said
Clement, with an odd recollection, "but I suppose he did not know about
these cadets?"
"No, the big Horner
sent up to Mother Butterfly's for some more stuff, not so mild, and then Ted
set upon me, and said it was all because of me that Vale Leston had to live
like a boiling of teetotal frogs and toads, just to please the little baronet's
lady mamma, but I was a Dutchman all the same, and should sell them yet-—I
sucked it in so well, and they talked of seeing how much I could stand. Something about my governor, and here—-that
word in the Catechism."
"Ah!" gasped
Clement, fairly clutching his arm, "and what spared you?"
"Horner came down, and
Sweetie Bob, that's the errand-boy, and there was a bother about the money, for
Bob wasn't to leave anything without being paid, and while they were jawing
about that, Merry laid hold of me and said, 'Come and look for the
aralia.' They got to shouting and
singing, and I don't think they saw what was doing. They were nasty songs, and Merry touched me and said, 'Let us go
after the aralia.' We got away without
their missing us at first, but they ran after us when they found it out, and if
you had not been there, Uncle Clem—-"
"Thank God I was! Now, Adrian, first tell me, did you taste
this stuff? You said you sucked it
in."
"Well, I did, a
little. You know, uncle, one cannot
always be made a baby. Women don't
understand, you know, and don't know what a fool it makes a man to have them
always after him, and have everything put out of his way like a precious
infant, and people drinking it on the sly like Gerald, or—-"
"Or me, eh,
Adrian? I can tell you that I never tasted
it for thirty years, and now only as a medicine. Lance, never."
"But they did not treat
you like a baby, and never let you see so much as a glass of beer."
"Well, I am going to
treat you like a man, but it is a sorrowful history that I have to tell
you. You know that your mother and Aunt
Wilmet are twin sisters ?"
"Oh yes, though Aunt
Wilmet is stout and jolly, and mother ever so much prettier and more delicate
and nice."
"Yes, from
ill-health. She is never free from
suffering."
"I know. Old Dr. May said there was no help for
it."
"Do you know what
caused that ill-health? My boy, they
spoke of your father to-day-—brutes that they were," he could not help
muttering.
"Yes, he died when I
was a week old."
"He had ruined himself
when quite a young man, body, soul, and estate-—and you too, beforehand, in
estate, and broken your mother's heart and health by being given up to that
miserable habit from which we want to save you."
"I thought it was only
poor men that got drunk and beat their wives" (more knowledge, by the bye,
than he was supposed to possess).
"He did not beat her?"
"Oh no, no," said
Clement, "but he as surely destroyed all her happiness, and made you and
your sisters very poor for your station in life, so that it is really hard to
educate you, and you will have to work for yourself and them. And at only thirty-six years old his life
was cut off."
"Was that what D. T.
meant? I heard Ted whisper something
about that."
"It was well,"
thought Clement, "that he had grace enough to whisper. Yes, my poor boy, it is only too true. I was sent for to find your father dying of
delirium tremens—-you just born, your mother nearly dead, the desolation of
your sisters unspeakable. He was only
thirty-six, and that vice, together with racing, had devoured him and all the
property that should have come to his children. I think he tried to repent at the very last, but there was little
time, little power, only he put you and your sisters in my charge, and begged
me to save you from being like him."
"Did they mean that I
was sure to be like that? Like a
pointer puppy, pointing."
"They meant it. And, Adrian, it is so far true that there is
an inheritance—-with some more, with some less-—of our forefathers'
nature. Some have tendencies harder to
repress than others. But, my dear boy,
you know that we all have had a force given us wherewith to repress and conquer
those tendencies, and that we can."
"When we were baptized,
God the Holy Spirit," said Adrian, under his breath.
"You know it, you can
believe now. Your uncle Lance and I
prayed that the old nature might be put down, the new raised up. We pray, your mother and sisters have prayed
ever since, that so it may be, that you may conquer any evil tendencies that
may be in you; but, Adrian, no one can save you from the outside if you do not
strive yourself. Now you see why your
poor mother has been so anxious to keep all temptation out of your reach."
"But I'm growing a man
now. I can't always go on so."
"No, you can't. You shall be treated as a man while you are
with me. But I do very seriously advise
you-—nay, I entreat of you, not to begin taking any kind of liquor, for it
would incite the taste to grow upon you, till it might become uncontrollable,
and be your tyrant. If you have reason
to think the pledge would be a protection to you, come to me, or to Uncle
Bill."
He was interrupted by Sibby
coming in with his cup of tea, and—-
"Now, Mr. Clement,
whatever have you been after now? Up to
your antics the minute Miss Cherry is out of the way. Aye, ye needn't go to palavering me. I hear it in your breath," and she darted at the stimulant.
"I've had some, Sibby,
since I came in."
"More reason you should
have it now. Get off with you, Sir
Adrian, don't be worriting him. Now,
drink that, sir, and don't speak another word."
He was glad to obey. He wanted to think, in much thankfulness for
the present, and in faith and love which brought hope for the future.
Art thou a magistrate? Then be severe.—-GEORGE HERBERT.
Early in the day General
Mohun received a note from Clement Underwood, begging him to look in at St.
Andrew's Rock as soon as might be convenient.
"Ah," said his
sister, "I strongly suspect something wrong about the boys. Fergus was very odd and silent last night
when I asked him about Jem Horner's picnic, and he said something about that
Harewood cousin being an unmitigated brute."
"I hope Fergus was not
in a scrape."
"Oh no, it is not his
way. His geology is a great safeguard. If it had been Wilfred I might have been
afraid."
"His head is full-—at
least as much room as the lost aralia leaves—-of the examination for the
Winchester College election."
"Yes, you know Jasper
has actually promised Gillian that if either of her brothers gets a
scholarship, she may be allowed a year at Lady Margaret Hall."
"Yes, it incited her to
worry Wilfred beyond sufferance in his holidays. I know if you or Lily had been always at me I should have kicked
as hard as he does."
"Lily herself can
hardly cram him with his holiday task; but Fergus is a good little
fellow."
"You have kept him at
it in a more judgmatical way. But won't
Armytage come in between the damsel and her college?"
"Poor Mr.
Armytage-—Captain, I believe, for he has got his commandership. Gill snubs him desperately. I believe she is afraid of herself and her
heart."
"I hope she won't be a
goose. Jasper told me that he is an
excellent fellow, and it will be an absolute misfortune if the girl is besotted
enough to refuse him."
"Girls have set up a
foolish prejudice against matrimony."
"Well, I am off. Clement Underwood is a reasonable man, and
would not send for me without cause."
General Mohun came to that
opinion when he heard of the scene on the beach, and of the absolute certainty
that the contraband goods had been procured at Mrs. Schnetterling's. Before his visit was over, a note came down
on gold-edged, cyphered pink paper, informing the Reverend E. C. Underwood that
Mrs. Campbell was much obliged to him for his attention to her son, who was
very unwell, entirely from the effects of clotted cream. And while they were still laughing over the
scored words, Anna knocked at the door with a message from her aunt, to ask
whether they could come and speak to poor Mrs. Edgar, who was in a dreadful
state.
"It is not about
Adrian, I hope?" said she.
"Oh no, no, my dear;
Adrian is all right, thanks to Fergus again," said her uncle. "He is the boy's great protector; I
only wish they could be always together."
Poor Mrs. Edgar! Rumours had not been slow in reaching her of
the condition in which her scholars had been found, very odd rumours too. One that James Campbell had been brought
home insensible, and the two sailors carried on board in the like state; and an
opposite report, that the poor dear boys had only made themselves sick with
dainties out of Mrs. Schnetterling's, and it was all a cruel notion of that
teetotal ritualist clergyman. Some boys
would not speak, others were vague and contradictory, and many knew nothing,
Horner and Campbell were absent.
Clement much relieved her by giving an account of the matter, and
declaring that he feared his own elder nephew was the cause of all the scandal,
though he believed that some of her bigger pupils were guilty of obtaining a
smaller quantity, knowingly, of the Schnetterling's illicit wares, chiefly so
far for the fun of doing something forbidden—-"Stolen waters are
sweet."
"A wicked woman! Surely she should not be allowed to go
on."
"I am going, on the
spot, to see what can be done," said General Mohun; "but indeed I
should have thought young Campbell rather too old for your precincts."
"Ah! yes. He is troublesome, but he is so backward,
and is so delicate, that his mother has implored me to keep him on, that he may
have sea-bathing. But this shall be the
final stroke!"
"It will be the ruin of
your school otherwise," said the General.
"Ah! it might. And yet Mrs. Campbell will never be
persuaded of the fact! And she is a
person of much influence! However, I
cannot have my poor dear little fellows led astray."
Then, with some decided
praises of dear little Sir Adrian, and regrets at losing Fergus Merrifield,
whom she declared, on the authority of her gentleman assistant, to be certain
of success, she departed; and Clement resumed his task of writing letters,
which he believed to be useless, but which he felt to be right--one a grave
warning to Edward Harewood, and one to his father, whose indulgence he could
not but hold accountable.
Reginald Mohun meanwhile
went his way to the officer of Inland Revenue, who already had his suspicions
as to Mrs. Schnetterling, and was glad of positive evidence. He returned with the General to hear from
Mr. Underwood the condition in which he had found the boys, and the cause he had
for attributing it to the supplies from Mother Butterfly, and this was thought
sufficient evidence to authorize the sending a constable with a search-warrant
to the shop. The two gentlemen were
glad that the detection should be possible without either sending a spy, or
forcing evidence from the boys, who had much better be kept out of the matter
altogether. No lack of illicit stores
was found when the policemen made their descent, and a summons was accordingly
served on its mistress to appear at the next Petty Sessions.
Reginald Mohun, used to the
justice of county magistrates, and the unflinching dealings of courts-martial,
was determined to see the affair through, so he went to the magistrates'
meeting, and returned with the tidings that the possession of smuggled tobacco
ready for sale had been proved against Mrs. Schnetterling, and she had been
fined twenty-five pounds, to be paid at the next Petty Sessions. Otherwise goods would be seized to that
value, or she would have a short term of imprisonment. There was no doubt that contraband spirits
were also found, but it was not thought expedient to press this charge.
He said the poor woman had
been in a great passion of despair, wringing her hands and weeping
demonstratively.
"Quite
theatrical," he said. "I am
sure she has been an actress."
"It did not prejudice
your hard-headed town-councillors in her favour," said Gerald.
"Far from it! In fact old Simmonds observed that she was a
painted foreign Jezebel."
"Not to her face!"
said Gerald.
"We are not quite
brutes, whatever you may think us, my boy," said the General
good-humouredly.
"Well," said
Gerald, in the same tone, "how could I tell how it might be when the
Philistines conspired to hunt down a poor foreign widow trying to pick up a
scanty livelihood ?"
"If the poor foreign
widow had been content without corrupting the boys," said Clement,
"she would have been let alone."
"It was not for
corrupting the boys. That was done-—or
not done—-by my amiable cousin Ted.
What harm did her 'baccy do to living soul?"
"It is a risky thing,
to say the least of it, for a living soul to defraud the revenue," said
Clement.
"Of which probably she
never heard."
"She must have seen the
terms of her licence," said the General.
"Aye, a way of
increasing the revenue by burthens on the chief solace of poverty," said
Gerald hotly.
"You'll come to your
senses by and by, young man," imperturbably answered the General.
"Is she likely to be
able to pay?" asked Gerald in return.
"Oh yes, the policeman
said she drove a very thriving trade, both with the boys and with the sailors,
and that there was no doubt that she could pay."
Clement was very glad to
hear it, for it not only obviated any sense of harshness in his mind, but he
thought Gerald, in his present mood of compassion--or opposition, whichever it
was-—capable of offering to undertake to pay the fine for her.
Poor little Ludmilla was
found the next day by Mrs. Henderson, crying softly over her work at the mosaic
department-—work which was only the mechanical arrangement from patterns
provided, for she had no originality, and would never attain to any promotion
in the profession.
Mrs. Henderson took the poor
girl to her own little office, to try to comfort her, and bring her into
condition for the rehearsal of the scene with Ferdinand, which she was to go
through in Mr. Flight's parlour chaperoned by his mother. She was so choked with sobs that it did not
seem probable that she would have any voice; for she had been struggling with
her tears all day, and now, in the presence of her friend, she gave them a free
course. She thought it so cruel—-so
very cruel of the gentlemen; how could they do such a thing to a poor helpless
stranger? And that tall one-—to be a
clergyman-—how could he?
Mrs. Henderson tried to
represent that, having accepted the licence on certain terms, it was wrong to
break them; and that the gentlemen must be right to hinder harm to their
nephews.
It seemed all past the poor
girl's understanding, since the nephews had taken no harm; and indeed the other
boys had only touched the spirits by way of joke and doing something forbidden:
it had all come of those horrid young midshipmen, who had come down and worried
and bothered her mother into giving them the bottles of spirits which had not been
mixed. It was very hard.
"Ah, Lydia, one sin
leads no one knows where! Those little
boys, think of their first learning the taste for alcohol in secret!"
Lydia did see this, but
after all, she said, it was not the spirits, but the tobacco, which the Dutch
and American sailors were glad enough to exchange for her mother's
commodities. She had never perceived
any harm in the arrangement, and hardly comprehended when the saying,
"Custom to whom custom," was pointed out to her.
Kalliope asked whether the
fine would fall heavily on her mother.
"Oh, that is worst of
all. Mother is gone to Avoncester to
raise the money. She won't tell me
how. And I do believe O'Leary's circus
is there."
Then came another sobbing
fit.
"But how-—what do you
mean, my dear?"
"O'Leary was our clown
when my father-—my dear father-—was alive.
He was a coarse horrid man,
as cruel to the poor dear horses as he dared.
And now he has set up for himself, and has been going about all over the
county. Mother has been quite different
ever since she met him one day in Avoncester, and I fear-—oh, I fear he will
advance her this money, and make her give me up to him; and my dear father made
her promise that I would never be on the boards."
This was in an agony of
crying, and it appeared that Schnetterling had really been a very decent,
amiable person, who had been passionately fond of his little daughter. Her recollection dated from the time when
the family had come from America, and he had become partner in a circus,
intending to collect means enough to retire to a home in Germany, but he had
died five years ago, at Avoncester, of fever, and his wife had used his savings
to set up this little shop at Rockquay, choosing that place because it was the
resort of foreign trading-vessels, with whom her knowledge of languages would
be available. She had suffered from the
same illness, and her voice had been affected at the time, and she was
altogether subdued and altered, and had allowed her daughter to receive a good
National school training; but with the recovery of health, activity, and voice,
a new temper, or rather the old one renewed, had seized her, and since she had
met her former companion, Ludmilla foreboded that the impulse of wandering had
come upon her, and that if the interference of the authorities pressed upon her
and endangered her traffic, she would throw it up altogether, and drag her
daughter into the profession so dreadful to all the poor child's feelings.
No wonder that the girl
cried till she had no voice, and took but partial comfort from repeated
assurances that her friends would do their utmost on her behalf. Mrs. Henderson tried to compose and cheer
her, walking with her herself to St. Kenelm's Parsonage, and trying to keep up
her earnest desire to please Mr. Flight, the special object of her
veneration. But wishes were ineffectual
to prevent her from breaking down in the first line of her first song, and when
Mr. Flight blamed, and Lady Flight turned round on the music-stool to say
severely—-"Command yourself, Lydia," she became almost hysterical.
"Wait a minute,"
said Gerald. "Give her a glass of
wine, and she will be better."
"Oh no, no; please, I'm
temp—-" and a sob.
The five o'clock tea was
still standing on a little table, and Gerald poured out a cup and took it to
her, then set her down in an arm-chair, and said—-
"I'll go through Angus'
part, and she will be better," and as she tried to say "Thank
you," and "So kind," he held up his hand, and told her to be
silent. In fact, his encouragement, and
the little delay he had made, enabled her to recover herself enough to get
through her part, though nothing like as well as would have been expected of
her.
"Never mind," said
Gerald, "she will be all right when my uncle comes. Won't you, Mona?"
"I should have
expected-—" began Lady Flight.
Gerald held up his hand in
entreaty.
"People's voices can't
be always the same," he said cheerily.
"I know our Mona will do us credit yet! Won't you, Mona? You know
how to pity me with my logs!"
"You had better go and
have some tea in the kitchen, Lydia," said Lady Flight repressively; and
Ludmilla curtsied herself off, with a look of gratitude out of her swollen
eyelids at Gerald.
"Poor little
mortal," he said, as she went.
"I am afraid that in her case summum jus was summa injuria."
"It was quite right to
prosecute that mischievous woman," said Mr. Flight.
"Maybe," said
Gerald; "but wheat will grow alongside of tares."
"I hope the girl is
wheat," half ironically and severely said the lady.
Gerald shrugged his
shoulders and took his leave.
And with trumpets and with
banners
As becomes gintale good
manners.-—THACKERAY.
A telegram from Sir Jasper
brought the good news that Fergus's name was high on the Winchester roll, and
that he was sure of entering college after the holidays. Gillian alone was allowed to go up to the
station with her uncle Reginald to meet the travellers, lest the whole family
should be too demonstrative in their welcome.
And at the same time there emerged from the train not only Captain
Armytage, but also Lancelot Underwood and his little boy. All the rest of his family were gone to
Stoneborough to delight the hearts of Dr. May and his daughter Ethel.
Gillian was in such training
that she durst not embrace her brother when he tumbled out of the carriage,
though she could hardly keep her feet from dancing, but she only demurely
said—-
"Mamma and all of them
are at Aunt Jane's."
"Come then," said
Sir Jasper to Captain Armytage, for which Gillian was not grateful, or thought
herself not, for she made a wry face.
There was a good deal of
luggage-—theatrical appliances to be sent to the pavilion.
"This may as well go
too," said Captain Armytage.
"Oh! oh! It is the buccaneer's sword!" cried
little Felix. "How lovely! Last time we only had Uncle Jack's, and this
is ever so much longer!"
"Do let me draw
it!" cried Fergus.
"Not here, my boy, or
they would think a conspiracy was breaking out. Ha!" as a sudden blare of trumpets broke out as they reached
the station gate.
"Oh, is it for
him?" cried Felix, who had been instructed in Fergus's triumph.
"See, the conquering hero comes,
Sound the trumpets, beat the drums!"
said the General.
Fergus actually coloured
crimson, but the colour was deepened as he muttered "Bosh!" while two
piebald ponies, drawing the drummers and trumpeters in fantastic raiment,
preceded an elephant shrouded in scarlet and gold trappings, with two or three
figures making contortions on his back, and followed by a crowned and sceptred
dame in blue, white, and gold, perched aloft on a car drawn by four steeds in
glittering caparisons.
"Will you mount it,
Fergus?" asked his uncle.
"You did not expect such a demonstration."
Fergus bit his lip. It was hard to be teased instead of exalted;
but Fely and he were absorbed in the pink broadsides that the lady in the car
was scattering.
CIRCUS-—THIS
NIGHT-—ROTHERWOOD PARK.
The Sepoy's Revenge!
Thrilling Incidents!
Sagacious Elephant!
Dance of Arab Coursers!!
Acrobatic Feats!! &c., &c.
"Oh, daddy! daddy! do
take me to see it!"
"Father, I should like
to see it very much indeed," were the exclamations of the two little
boys. "You know I have never seen
any acrobatic feats."
"A long word enough to
please you," said Uncle Reginald.
"He deserves something.
I'll take you, master."
"I should think this
was not of the first quality," said Sir Jasper.
"Never mind. Novelty is the charm that one can have only
once in one's life," said the General.
"Some of those van
fellows are very decent folk," said Lancelot. "I have seen a great deal of them at Bexley Fair times. You would be astonished to know how grateful
they are for a little treatment as if they were not out of humanity's
reach."
Gillian was trying to make
Fergus tell her what his questions had been, and how he had answered them.
"I declare, Gill, you
are as bad as some of the boys' horrid governors. There was one whose father walked him up and down and wouldn't
let him play cricket, and went over all the old questions with him. I should never have got in, if papa hadn't
had more sense than to badger me out of my life."
At the gate between the
copper beeches the Underwoods and Merrifields parted, with an engagement to
meet at the circus on the part of the boys and their conductors.
Fergus was greeted with
open-mouthed, open-armed delight by all the assembled multitude, very little
checked by the presence of Captain Armytage.
Only Lady Merrifield did not say much, but there was a dew in her eyes
as she held fast the little active fingers, and whispered—-
"My good industrious
boy."
Sir Jasper, in his grand and
gracious manner, turned to his sister-in-law, saying—-
"We could not but come
first to you, Jane, for it is to you that he is indebted, as we all are,
primarily for his success."
"That is the greatest
compliment I ever had, Jasper," she answered, smiling but almost tearful,
and laughing it off. "I feel ready
to mount yonder elephant lady's triumphal car."
The General refrained from
any more teasing of Fergus on his first impression; and at seven that evening
the younger Merrifield boys with their uncle, and the two from St. Andrew's
Rock with Lance, set off in high spirits.
They re-appeared much sooner
than they were expected at Beechcroft Cottage, where the Underwoods were
spending the long twilight evening.
"A low concern!"
was the General's verdict.
"We fled simultaneously
from the concluding ballet," said Lance.
"There had been quite as much as we could bear for ingenuous
youth."
"We stood the Sepoy's
Death Song,' said the General, "but the poster of the Bleeding Bride was
enough for us."
"They had only one
elephant!" cried Adrian.
"A regular
swindle," said Wilfred.
"No lions!" added
Fely, "nothing to see but that poor old elephant! I wish he would have turned round and
spouted water at them, as that one did to the tailor."
"Water would be
uncommonly good for them," said the General, laughing, "they are not
much acquainted therewith."
"And such an
atmosphere!" said Lance.
"I see it on your
forehead, poor boy," said Geraldine.
"I should like to set
on the Society against cruelty to animals," said the General; "I saw
galls on the horses' necks, and they were all half starved."
"Then to see the poor
old elephant pretend to be drunk!" added Fergus, "stagger about, and
led off by the policeman, drunk and disorderly!"
"Was that being
drunk?" asked Adrian, with wide-open eyes. "It was like Campbell that day." Everybody laughed.
Wilfred did so now.
"You green kid,
you."
"Happy verdure,"
said the General, "to be unaware that some people can laugh when they
ought to weep."
"Weep!" exclaimed
Wilfred, "every time one sees a fellow screwy in the street."
"Perhaps the angels
do," murmured Clement.
"Come, Master Wilfred,
you have expressed your opinions sufficiently to-night," said the
General. "Suppose you and Fergus
walk home together. A nasty low place
as ever I saw. I have a mind to tell
the Mayor about it."
Gerald said—-
"Is not that making
yourself very unpopular?"
"That is no great
matter," said the General, rather surprised.
"I should have thought
it better to refine the people's tastes than to thwart their present
ones."
"The improper must be
stopped before the taste for the proper can be promoted," said Clement.
"With all the
opposition and ill-blood that you cause?" said Gerald. "Why, if I were an errand-boy, the
suppression would send me direct to the circus. Would it not do the same by you, Uncle Lance?"
"Discouragement might,
prohibition would prevent wholly, and I should be thankful," said Lance.
"Ah! you are of the old
loyal nature," said Gerald.
"You of the old school can never see things by modern lights."
"I am thankful to
say-—not," responded Reginald Mohun, in a tone that made some laugh, and
Gerald sigh in Anna's ear—-
"Happy those who see
only one side of a question."
There was another great day
for the boys, namely, the speech or closing day at the school, when Fergus was
the undoubted hero, and was so exalted that his parents thought it would be
very bad for him, and were chiefly consoled by his strong and genuine dislike
to having to declaim with Clement Varley the quarrel of Brutus and Cassius. He insisted on always calling the former
"Old Brute," and all the efforts of mother and aunt never got him
beyond the dogged repetition of a lesson learnt by heart, whereas little Varley
threw himself into the part with spirit that gained all the applause. Fergus carried off a pile of prizes too, but
despised them. "Stupid old
poetry!" said he, "what should I do with that? Do let me change it, father, for the
Handbook of Paleontology, or something worth having."
Adrian had three prizes too,
filling Anna with infinite delight. He
was not to go home immediately on the break-up of the school, but was to wait
for his sisters, who were coming in a few days more with Lady Travis Underwood
to the bazaar and masque, so that he would go home with them.
Neither the prospect nor the
company of little Fely greatly reconciled him to the delay, but his mother
could not believe that her darling could travel alone, and his only
satisfaction was in helping Fergus to arrange his spare specimens for sale.
But I needn't tell you what
to do, only do it out of hand,
And charge whatever you like
to charge, my lady won't make a stand.
-—T. HOOD.
The ladies' committee could
not but meet over and over again, wandering about the gardens, which were now
trimmed into order, to place the stalls and decide on what should and should
not be.
There was to be an art
stall, over which Mrs. Henderson was to preside. Here were to be the very graceful and beautiful articles of
sculpture and Italian bijouterie that the Whites had sent home, and that were
spared from the marble works; also Mrs. Grinstead's drawings, Captain
Henderson's, those of others, screens and scrap-books and photographs. Jasper and a coadjutor or two undertook to
photograph any one who wished it; and there too were displayed the
Mouse-traps. Mrs. Henderson, sure to
look beautiful, quite Madonna-like in her costume, would have the charge of the
stall, with Gillian and two other girls, in Italian peasant-dresses, sent home
by Aunt Ada.
Gillian was resolved on
standing by her. "Kalliope wants
some one to give her courage," she said.
"Besides, I am the mother of the Mouse-trap, and I must see how it
goes off."
Lady Flight and a bevy of
young ladies of her selection were to preside over the flowers; Mrs. Yarley
undertook the refreshments; Lady Merrifield the more ordinary bazaar
stall. Her name was prized, and Anna
was glad to shelter herself under her wing.
The care of Valetta and Primrose, to say nothing of Dolores, was enough
inducement to overcome any reluctance, and she was glad to be on the committee
when vexed questions came on, such as Miss Pettifer's offer of a skirt-dance,
which could not be so summarily dismissed as it had been at Beechcroft, for
Lady Flight and Mrs. Varley wished for it, and even Mrs. Harper was ready to
endure anything to raise the much-needed money, and almost thought Lady
Merrifield too particular when she discontinued the dancing-class for Valetta
and Primrose.
"That speaks for
itself," said Mrs. Grinstead.
"I can fancy seeing no
harm in it for little girls," said Lady Merrifield, "but I don't like
giving them a talent the use of which seems to be to enable them to show
off."
"And I know that Lady
Rotherwood would not approve," said Miss Mohun, aware that this settled
the matter. "And here's another
outsider, Miss Penfeather, who offers to interpret handwriting at
two-and-sixpence a head."
"By all means,"
was the cry. "We will build her a
bower somewhere near the photography."
"I am only
afraid," added Jane, "of her offering to do palmistry.
Do you know, I dabbled a
little in that once, and I came to the conclusion that it was not a safe study
for oneself or any one else."
"Quite right," said
Geraldine.
"Do you believe in it
then?"
"Not so as to practise
it, or accept it so far as the future is concerned, and to play at it as a
parody of fortune-telling seems to me utterly inadmissible."
"And to be squashed
with Lord Rotherwood's mighty name," said her sister, laughing.
Lady Rotherwood would do so
effectively. Wherewith came on the
question of raffles, an inexhaustible one, since some maintained that they were
contrary to English law, and were absolutely immoral, while others held that it
was the only way of disposing of really expensive articles. These were two statues sent by Mrs. White,
and an exquisite little picture by Mrs. Grinstead, worth more than any one
could be expected to give. It was one
that she had nearly finished at the time of Mr. Grinstead's illness-—John
Inglesant arriving in his armour of light on his wedding morning-—and the
associations were so painful that she said she never wished to see it again.
There were likewise a good
many charming sketches of figures and scenery, over which Gerald and Anna
grieved, though she had let them keep all they could show cause for; but
drawing had become as much her resource as in the good old days. She was always throwing off little outlines,
and she had even begun a grand study, which she called "Safe Home," a
vessel showing signs of storm and struggle just at the verge of a harbour lost
in golden light.
And the helmsman's face?
Clement and Lance neither of
them said in words whose it was, as they both stood looking at it, and owned to
themselves the steadfast face of their eldest brother, but Clement said, with a
sigh—-
"Ah! we are a long way
as yet from that."
"I'm very glad to hear
you say so," exclaimed Lance; then laughing at himself, "You are ever
so much better."
"Oh yes, I suppose I am
to start again, going softly all my days, perhaps, and it is well, for I don't
think the young generation can spare me yet."
"Nor Cherry."
"How thankful I am to
have Cherry restored to me I cannot say, and I do not feel convinced that there
may not be care at hand with Gerald.
The boy is in a reserved mood, very civil and amiable, but clearly
holding back from confidence."
"Does she see it?"
"Yes; but she fancies
he bestows his confidence on Dolores Mohun, the girl from New Zealand, and
resigns herself to be set aside. It is
pretty well time that we went to meet her."
For there was to be a dress
rehearsal in the pavilion, to which certain spectators were to be admitted,
chiefly as critics.
"Do you walk up the
hill, Clem?"
"Yes, as long as I
don't go too fast. Go on if you are
wanted, and I will follow. Cherry has
sent the carriage for an invalid who cannot venture to be there all the
day."
"Let them wait. A walk with you is not to be wasted. Run on, Fely, tell them we are coming,"
he added to his little Ariel, who had got lost in Jungle Beasts.
As they went up the hill
together, Clement not sorry to lean on his brother's arm, a dark woman of
striking figure and countenance, though far from young, came up with them,
accompanied by a stout, over-dressed man.
"That's the cigar-shop
woman," said Lance, "the mother of our pretty little Miranda."
"I wonder she chooses
to show herself after her conviction," said Clement.
"And if I am not much
mistaken, that is the villain of The Sepoy's Revenge," said Lance. "Poor little Butterfly, it is a bad
omen for her future fate."
As they reached the doors of
the great hotel, they found the pair in altercation with the porter before the
iron gate that gave admittance to the gardens.
"Mother Butterfly" was pleading that she was the mother of
Miss Schnetterling, who was singing, and the porter replying that his orders
were strict.
"No, not on any
consideration," he repeated, as the man was evidently showing him the
glance of silver, and a policeman, who was marching about, showed signs of
meaning to interfere.
At the same moment Gerald's
quick steps came up from the inside.
"That's right, Lance;
every one is crying out for you. Vicar,
Cherie is keeping a capital place for you."
The gate opened to admit
them, and therewith Mrs. Schnetterling, trying to push in, made a vehement
appeal—-
"Mr. Underwood, sir,
surely the prima donna's own mother should not be excluded."
"Her mother!" said
Gerald. "Well, perhaps so, but
hardly this-—person," as his native fastidiousness rose at the sight.
"No, sir," said
the porter. "Captain Henderson and Mr. Simmonds, they have specially
cautioned me who I lets in."
The man grumbled something
about swells and insolence, and Lance, with his usual instinct of courtesy,
lingered to say—-
"This is quite a
private rehearsal-—only the persons concerned!"
"And if I'm come on
business," said the man confidentially.
"You are something in our line."
"Scarcely," said
Lance, rather amused. "At any
rate, I don't make the regulations."
He sped away at the summons
of his impatient son and Gerald.
They met Captain Henderson
on the way, and after a hasty greeting, he said—-
"So you have let in the
Schnetterling woman?"
"One could not well
keep out the mother," returned Lance.
"Well, no, but did she
bring a man with her? My wife says the
poor little Mona is in mortal terror lest he is come to inspect her for a
circus company."
"Quite according to his
looks," said Lance. "Poor
child, it may be her fate, but she ought to be in safe hands, but I suppose the
woman wants to sacrifice her to present gain."
They went on their way, and
Lance and Gerald were soon absorbed in their cares of arrangement, while
Clement was conducted to the seat reserved for him between his sister and Lady
Merrifield. The pavilion had been
fitted with stages of seats on the inner side, but the back-—behind the
stage-—was so contrived that in case of favourable weather the real sea-view
could be let in upon occasion, though the curtain and adjuncts, which had been
painted by some of the deft fingers at Vale Leston, represented the cavern;
also there was a first scene, with a real sail and mast.
It was a kind of semi-dress
rehearsal, beginning with pirate songs by the school-master and choir, who had
little difficulty in arranging themselves as buccaneers. The sail was agitated, then reefed, stormy
songs were heard, where Captain Armytage did his part fairly well; the
boatswain was gratified by roaring out his part character-
istically, and the curtain
fell on "We split, we split, we split."
Then came a song of
Prospero, not much disguised by a plaid and Highland bonnet, interrupted by the
pretty, graceful Miranda, very shy and ill-assured at first, but gathering
strength from his gentle encouraging ways, while he told what was needful in
the recitative that he alone could undertake.
Then the elves and fairies, led by little Felix, in a charming cap like
Puck, danced on and sang, making the prettiest of tableaux, lulling Miranda to
sleep, and then Ariel conversing in a most dainty manner with Prospero.
Next Ferdinand and Miranda
had their scene, almost all songs and duets.
Both sang very sweetly, and she had evidently gained in courage, and
threw herself into her part.
The shipwrecked party then
came on the scene, performed their songs, and were led about Puck-fashion by
the fairies, and put to sleep by the lament over Ferdinand. The buccaneers in like manner were deluded
by more mischievous songs and antics, till bogged and crying out behind the
scenes.
Their intended victims were
then awakened, to find themselves in the presence of Prospero; sing themselves
into the reconciliation, then mourn for Ferdinand, until the disclosure of the
two lovers, and the final release of Ariel and the sprites, all singing
Jacobite songs.
To those who were not au
fait with the 'Tempest' and felt no indignation or jealousy at the travesty, it
was charming; and though the audience at the rehearsal numbered few of these,
the refined sweetness and power of the performers made it delightful and
memorable. Every one was in raptures
with the fairies, who had been beautifully drilled, and above all with their
graceful little leader, with his twinkling feet and arch lively manner,
especially in the parts with his father.
Ferdinand and Miranda-—or
rather Angus and Mona—-were quite ideal in looks, voices, and gestures.
"Almost dangerously
so," said Jane Mohun; "and the odd thing is that they are just alike
enough for first cousins, as they are here, though Shakespeare was not guilty
of making them such."
"The odd thing
is," said Geraldine, as she drove home with Clement, "that this
brought me back so strangely to that wonderful concert at home, with all of you
standing up in a row, and the choir from Minsterham, and poor Edgar's
star."
"An evil star!"
sighed Clement.
Lancelot said,
That were against me, what I
can I will;
And there that day
remained.-—TENNYSON.
It was on the night before
the final bustle and fury, so to speak, of preparation were to set in, when
arrivals were expected, and the sellers were in commotion, and he had been all
day putting the singers one by one through their parts, that as he went to his
room at night, there was a knock at Lancelot's door, and Gerald came in,
looking deadly white. He had been
silent and effaced all the evening, and his aunt had thought him tired, but he
had rather petulantly eluded inquiry, and now he came in with—-
"Lance, I must have it
out with some one."
"An Oxford
scrape?" said Lance.
"Oh no, I wish it was
only that." Then a silence, while
Lance looked at him, thinking, "What trouble could it be?" He had been very kind and gentle with the
little Miranda, but the manner had not struck Lance as lover-like.
There was a gasp again—-
"That person, that
woman at the gate, do you remember?"
Therewith a flash came over
Lance.
"My poor boy! You don't mean to say--"
Neither could bring himself
to say the word so sacred to Lancelot, and which might have been so sacred to
his nephew.
"How did you
guess?" said Gerald, lifting up the face that he had hidden on the table.
"I saw the likeness
between you and the girl. She reminded
me of some one I had once seen."
"Had you seen
her?"
"Once, at a concert,
twenty odd years ago. Your aunt, too,
was strangely carried back to that scene, by the girl's voice, I suppose."
"Poor child!" said
Gerald, still laying down his head and seeming terribly oppressed, as Lance
felt he well might be.
"It is a sad business
for you," said the uncle, with a kind hand on his shoulder. "How was it she did not claim you
before?-—not that she has any real claim."
"She did not know my
real name. My father called himself
Wood. I never knew the rest of it till
after I came home. That fellow bribed
the gardener, got in over the wall, or somehow, and when she saw you, and heard
you and me and all three of us, it gave her the clue."
"Well, Gerald, I do not
think she can dare to--"
"Oh!" interrupted
Gerald, "there's worse to come."
"What?" said
Lance, aghast.
"She says," and a
sort of dry sob cut him short, "she says she had a husband when she
married my father," and down went his head again.
"Impossible," was
Lance's first cry; "your father's first care was to tell Travis all was
right with you. Travis has the
certificates."
"Oh yes, it was no
fault of my father-—my father, my dear father-—no, but she deceived him, and I
am an impostor-—nobody."
"Gently, gently,
Gerald. We have no certainty that this
is true. Your father had known her for
years. Tell me, how did it come
out—-what evidence did she adduce?"
Gerald nerved himself to sit
up and speak collectedly.
"I believe it is half
that circus fellow's doing. I think she
is going to marry him, if she hasn't already.
She followed me, and just at the turn down this road, as I was bidding
the Mona girl goodnight, she came up with me, and said I little thought that
the child was my sister, and how delightful it was to see us acting
together. Well then, I can't say but a
horror came over me. I couldn't for the
life of me do anything but draw back, there was something so intolerable in the
look of her eyes, and her caressing manner," and he shuddered, glad of his
uncle's kind hand on his shoulder.
"Somehow, I let her get me out upon the high ground, and there she
said, 'So you are too great a swell to have word or look for your mother. No wonder, you always were un vilain petit
miserable; but I won't trouble you-—I wouldn't be bound to live your dull
ennuyant ladies' life for millions.
I'll bargain to keep out of your way; but O'Leary and I want a couple of
hundred pounds, and you'll not grudge it to us.' I had no notion of being
blackmailed, besides I haven't got it, and I told her she might know that I am
not of age, and had no such sum ready to hand.
She was urgent, and I began to think whether I could do anything to save
that poor little sister, when she evidently got some fresh impulse from the
man, and began to ask me how I should like to have it all disclosed to my nobs
of friends. Well, I wasn't going to be
bullied, and I answered that my friends knew already, and she might do her
worst. 'Oh, may I?' she said; 'you
wouldn't like, my fine young squire, to have it come out that I never was your
father's wife at all, and that you are no more than that gutter-child.' I could not understand her at first, and
said I would not be threatened, but that made her worse, and that rascal
O'Leary came to her help. They raised
their demands somehow to five hundred, and declared if they had not it paid
down, they should tell the whole story and turn me out. Of course I said they were welcome. Either I am my father's lawful son, or I am
not, and if not, the sooner it is all up with me the better, for whatever I am,
I am no thief and robber. So I set off
and came down the hill; but the brute kept pace with me to this very door,
trying to wheedle me, I believe. And
now what's to be done? I would go off
at once, and let Uncle Clem come into his rights, only I don't want to be the
death of him and Cherie."
"No," said Lance,
"my dear fellow! You have stood it
wisely and bravely so far, go on to do so.
I don't feel the least certain that this is not mere bullying. She did not tell you any particulars?"
"No, certainly
not."
"Not the name of this
supposed predecessor of Edgar's? Where
she may have been married, or how? How
she parted from him, or how she knows he was alive? It sounds to me a bogus notion, got up to put the screw on you,
by surprise. I'll tell you what I'll
do. I'll go down to the shop tomorrow
morning, see the woman, and extract the truth if possible, and I fully expect
that the story will shrink up to nothing."
"'Tis not the estate I
care for," said Gerald, looking somewhat cheered. "It is my father's honour and name. If that can be cleared—-"
"Do not I care?"
said Lance. "My dear brother
Edgar, my model of all that was noble and brilliant-—whom Felix loved above
all! Nay, and you, Gerald, our hope! I would give anything and everything to free
you from this stain, though I trust it will prove only mud that will not
stick. Anyway you have shown your true,
faithful Underwood blood. Now go to bed
and sleep if you can. Don't say a word,
nor look more like a ghost than you can help—-or we shall have to rouge
ourselves for our parts. My boy, my
boy! You are Edgar's boy, anyway."
And Lancelot kissed the
young pale cheek as he had done when the little wounded orphan clung to him
fourteen years ago, or as he kissed his own Felix.
Whatever the night was to
Gerald, long was the night, and long the light hours of the morning to the ever
sleepless Lance before he could rise and make his way to the shop with any hope
of gaining admission, and many were the sighs and prayers that this tale might
be confuted, and that the matter might be to the blessing of the youth to whom
he felt more warmly now than since those winning baby days had given place to
more ordinary boyhood. He had a long
time to pace up and down watching the sparkling water, and feeling the fresh
wind on the brow, which was as capable as ever of aching over trouble and
perplexity, and dreading above all the effect on the sister, whose consolation
and darling Gerald had always been. How
little he had thought, when he had stood staunch against his brother Edgar's
persuasions, that Zoraya was to be the bane of that life which had begun so
gaily!
When at last the door was
unfastened, and, as before, by Ludmilla, he greeted her kindly, and as she
evidently expected some fresh idea about the masque, he gave her his card, and
asked her to beg her mother to come and speak to him. She started at the name and said—-
"Oh, sir, you will do
nothing to hurt him-—Mr. Underwood?"
"It is the last thing I
wish," he said earnestly, and Ludmilla showed him into a little parlour,
full of the fumes of tobacco, and sped away, but he had a long time to wait,
for probably Mother Butterfly's entire toilette had to be taken in hand.
Before she appeared Lancelot
heard a man's voice, somewhere in the entry, saying—-
"Oh! the young ass has
been fool enough to let it out, has he?
I suppose this is the chap that will profit? You'll have your wits about you."
Lance was still his old self
enough to receive the lady with—-
"I beg to observe that
I am not the 'chap who will profit' if this miserable allegation holds
water. I am come to understand the
truth."
The woman looked frightened,
and the man came to her rescue, having evidently heard, and this Lance
preferred, for he always liked to deal with mankind rather than womankind. Having gone so far there was not room for
reticence, and the man took up the word.
"Madame cannot be
expected to disclose anything to the prejudice of her son and herself, unless
it was made worth her while."
"Perhaps not,"
said Lance, as he looked her over in irony, and drew the conclusion that the
marriage was a fact accomplished; "but she has demanded two hundred pounds
from her son, on peril of exposure, and if the facts are not substantiated,
there is such a thing as an action for conspiracy, and obtaining money on false
pretences."
"Nothing has been
obtained!" said the woman, beginning to cry. "He was very hard on his poor mother."
"Who forsook him as an
infant, cast off his father, and only claims him in order to keep a
disgraceful, ruinous secret hanging over his life for ever, in order to extort
money."
"Come now, this is tall
talk, sir," said O'Leary; "the long and short of it is, what will the
cove, yourself, or whoever it is that you speak for, come down for one way or
another?"
"Nothing," responded
Lance.
Neither of the estimable
couple spoke or moved under an announcement so incredible to them, and he went
on—-
"Gerald Underwood would
rather lose everything than give hush-money to enable him to be a robber, and
my elder brother would certainly give no reward for what would be the greatest
grief in his life."
O'Leary grinned as if he
wanted to say, "Have you asked him?"
"The priest," she
muttered.
"Ay, the meddling
parson who has done for you! He would
have to come down pretty handsomely."
Lancelot went on as if he
had not heard these asides.
"I am a magistrate; I
can give you in charge at once to the police, and have you brought before the
Mayor for conspiracy, when you will have to prove your words, or confess them
to be a lie."
He was not in the least
certain that where there was no threatening letter, this could succeed, but he
knew that the preliminaries would be alarming enough to elicit something, and
accordingly Mrs. O'Leary began to sob out—-
"It was when I was a
mere child, a bambina, and he used me so cruelly."
There was the first thread,
and on the whole, the couple were angry enough with Gerald, his refined
appearance and air of careless prosperity, to be willing that he should have a
fall, and Lance thus extracted that the "he" who had been cruel was a
Neapolitan impresario in a small way, who had detected that Zoraya, when a very
little child, had a charming voice, of which indeed she still spoke with pride,
saying Lida would never equal it. Her
parents were semi-gipsies, Hungarian, and had wandered all over the Austrian
empire, acting, singing, and bringing up their children to the like. They had actually sold her to the
impresario, who had sealed the compact, and hoped to secure the valuable
commodity by making her his wife. In
his security he had trained her in the severest mode, and visited the smallest
want of success with violence and harshness, so that her life was utterly
miserable, and on meeting her brother, who had become a member of a German
band, she had contrived to make her escape with him, and having really
considerable proficiency, the brother and sister had prospered, and through
sundry vicissitudes had arrived at being "stars" in Allen's troupe,
where Edgar Underwood, or, as he was there known, Tom Wood, had unfortunately
joined them; and the sequel was known to Lancelot, but he could not but listen
and gather up the details, disgusted as he was-—how the prima donna had
accepted his attention as her right, till her jealousy was excited by his
evident attraction to "the little English doll, for whom he killed his
man"; how she resolved to win him, and how scandalous reports at last had
brought him to offer marriage, unknowing, it was plain, of her past. It was not possible to guess how much she
was still keeping back, speaking under terror and compulsion as she did. But she declared that he had never loved
her, and was always wanting her to be like ces Anglaises fades, and as to her
child, he so tormented her about it, and the ways of his absurd mother and sisters,
and so expected her to sacrifice her art and her prospects to the little
wretch, that she was ready to strangle it!
"Maternal love, bah! she was not going to be like a bird or a
beast," she said, with a strange wild glance in her eyes that made Lance
shudder, and think how much more he respected the bird or beast. Then at Chicago, when Wood's own folly and
imprudence had brought on an illness that destroyed his voice, and she knew
there would be only starvation, or she should have to toil for the whole of
them, Schnetterling, manager of a circus, fell in love with her, and made her
good offers to sing in Canada, and Chicago was a place where few questions were
asked, so she freed herself.
She had made her rounds with
Schnetterling, a prudent German, and in process of time had come to England,
where, at Avoncester, both had been attacked by influenza; he died, and she
only recovered with a total loss of voice; but he had been prudent and frugal
enough to save a sufficient sum to set her up at Rockquay with the
tobacco-shop. She had chosen that place
on account of American trading-vessels putting in there, as well as those of
various foreign nations, with whom her knowledge of languages was available,
and no doubt there were some opportunities of dealing in smuggled goods. Just, however, as the smuggling was
beginning to be suspected, the circus of O'Leary came in her way, and the old
instincts were renewed. Then came the detection
and prosecution, and the need of raising the fine. She had recourse to O'Leary, who had before been Schnetterling's
underling, and now was a partner in Jellicoe's circus, who knew her
capabilities as a manager and actress, and perceived the probabilities of poor
little Lida's powers. The discovery
that the deserted baby that she had left at Chicago was a young handsome
squire, well connected, and, in her eyes, of unlimited means, had of course
incited both to make the utmost profit of him.
That he should not wish to hush the suspicion up, but should go straight
to his uncles, was to them a quite unexpected contingency.
All this was not exactly
told to Lancelot, but he extracted it, or gathered it before he was able to
arrive at what was really important, the name of Zoraya's first husband, where
she was married, and by whom, and where she had parted from him. She was so unwilling to give particulars
that he began almost to hope to make her confess that the whole was a myth, but
at last she owned that the man's name was Giovanni Benista, and that the
marriage had taken place at Messina; she knew not in what church, nor in what
year, only it was before the end of the old regime, for she recollected the
uniforms of the Bomba soldiers, though she could not remember the name of the
priest. Benista was old, very old—-the
tyrant and assassin that he was, no doubt he was dead. She often thought he would have killed
her—-and the history of his ill-treatment had to be gone through before it
appeared that she had fled from him at Trieste with her brother, in an English
trading-vessel, where their dexterity and brilliancy gained them concealment
and a passage. This was certainly in
the summer of 1865. Of Benista she knew
nothing since, but she believed him to have come from Piedmont.
Lance found Gerald walking
up and down anxiously watching for him, and receiving him with a
"Well!" that had in it volumes of suspense.
"Well, Gerald, I do not
think there can be any blame attached to your father, whatever comes of
it. He was deceived as much as any one
else, and his attachment to you seems to have been his great offence."
"Thank Heaven! Then he was deceived?"
"I am afraid there was
some previous ceremony. But stay,
Gerald! There is no certainty that it
was valid in the first place, and in the next, nothing is known of Benista since
1865, when he was an old man, so that there is a full chance that he was dead
before-—"
"Before April
1868. I say, Uncle Lance, they want to
make no end of a bear-fight for my coming of age. I must be out of the way first."
"Don't cry out too
soon. Even if the worst came to the
worst, as the property was left to you by will individually, I doubt whether
this discovery, if real, would make any difference in law. I do not know."
"But would I take it on
those terms? It would be simply
defrauding Clement, and all of you—-"
"Perhaps, long before,
we may be satisfied," said Lance.
"For the present, I think nothing can be done but endeavour to
ascertain the facts."
"One comfort is,"
said Gerald, "I have gained a sister.
I have walked with her to the corner of her place-—the marble works, you
know-—and she really is a jolly little thing, quite innocent of all her
mother's tricks, thinking Mrs. Henderson the first of human beings, except
perhaps Flight, the aesthetic parson. I
should not have selected him, you know, but between them they have kept her
quite a white sheet-—a Miranda any Ferdinand might be glad to find, and
dreading nothing so much as falling into the hands of that awful brute. Caliban himself couldn't have been
worse! I have promised her to do what I
can to save her-—buy her off—-anything."
"Poor child," said
Lance. "But, Gerald, nothing of
this must be said these next few days.
We can't put ourselves out of condition for this same raree-show."
"I'm sure it's a mere
abomination to me," said Gerald disconsolately. "I can't think why we should be dragged into all this
nuisance for what is not even our own concern."
"I'm sure I thought you
the rope that dragged me! At any rate
much higher up on it."
"Well, I never thought
you would respond—-you, who have enough on your hands at Bexley."
"One stroke even on the
outskirts is a stroke for all the cause."
"The cause! I don't believe in the cause, whatever it
is. What a concatenation now, that you
and I should make fools of ourselves in order to stave off the establishment of
national education, as if we could, or as if it was worth doing."
"Then why did you
undertake it?"
"Oh, ah! Why, one wants something to do down here,
and the Merrifield lot are gone upon it; and I did want to go through the thing
again, but now it seems all rot."
"Nevertheless, having
pledged ourselves to the performance, we cannot cry off, and the present duty
is to pack dull care away, put all this out of our heads, and regard it as a
mere mare's nest as long as possible, and above all not upset Cherry. Remember, let this turn out as it will, you
are yourself still, and her own boy, beloved for your father's sake, the joy of
our dear brother, and her great comforter.
A wretched mistake can never change that."
Lance's voice was quivering,
and Gerald's face worked. Lance gave
his hand a squeeze, and found voice to say—-
"'Hold thee still in
the Lord, and abide patiently upon Him.'
And meantime be a man over it.
It can be done. I have often had
to forget."
But I can't conceive, in
this very hot weather,
How I'm ever to bring all
these people together.
T. HOOD.
It was not a day when any
one could afford to be upset. It was
chiefly spent in welcoming arrivals or in rushing about: on the part of Lance
and Gerald in freshly rehearsing each performer, in superintending their stage
arrangements, reviewing the dresses, and preparing for one grand final
rehearsal; and in the multifarious occupations and anxieties, and above all in
the music, Gerald did really forget, or only now and then recollect, that a
nightmare was hanging on him, and that his little Mona need not shrink from him
in maidenly shyness, but that he might well return her pretty appealing look of
confidence.
The only quiet place in the
town apparently was Clement Underwood's room, for even Cherry had been whirled
off, at first to arrange her own pictures and drawings; and then her wonderful
touch made such a difference in the whole appearance of the stall, and her
dainty devices were so graceful and effective, that Gillian and Mysie implored
her to come and tell them what to do with theirs, where they were struggling
with cushions, shawls, and bags, with the somewhat futile assistance of Mr.
Armine Brownlow and Captain Armytage, whenever the latter could be spared from
the theatrical arrangements, where, as he said, it was a case of parmi les
borgnes—-for his small experience with the Wills-of-the-Wisp made him valuable.
The stalls were each in what
was supposed to represent by turns a Highland bothie or a cave. The art stall was a cave, that the back
(really a tool-house) might serve the photographers, and the front was
decorated with handsome bits of rock and spar, even ammonites. Poor Fergus could not recover his horror and
contempt when his collection of specimens, named and arranged, was very nearly
seized upon to fill up interstices, and he was infinitely indebted to Mrs. Grinstead
for finding a place where their scientific merits could be appreciated without
letting his dirty stones, as Valetta called them, disturb the general effect.
"And my
fern-gardens! Oh, Mrs. Grinstead,"
cried Mysie, "please don't send them away to the flower place which Miss
Simmonds and the gardeners are making like a nursery garden! They'll snub my poor dear pterises."
"Certainly we'll make
the most of your pterises. Look
here. There's an elegant doll, let her
lead the family party to survey them.
That's right. Oh no, not that
giantess! There's a dainty little Dutch
lady."
"Charming. Oh! and here's her boy in a sailor's
dress."
"He is big enough to be
her husband, my dear. You had better
observe proportions, and put that family nearer the eye."
"Those dolls!"
cried Valetta, "they were our despair."
"Make them tell a
story, don't you see. Where's that fat
red cushion?"
"Oh, that cushion! I put it out of sight because it is such a
monster."
"Yes; it is just like
brick-dust enlivened by half-boiled cauliflowers! Never mind, it will be all the better background. Now, I saw a majestic lady reposing
somewhere. There, let her sit against
it. Oh, she mustn't flop over. Here, that match-box, is it? I pity the person deluded enough to use
it! Prop her up with it. Now then, let us have a presentation of
ladies—-she's a governor's wife in the colonies, you see. Never mind costumes, they may be queer. All that will stand or kneel-—that's right. Those that can only sit must hide behind,
like poor Marie Antoinette's ladies on the giggling occasion."
So she went on, full of fun,
which made the work doubly delightful to the girls, who darted about while she
put the finishing touches, transforming the draperies from the aspect of a
rag-and-bone shop, as Jasper had called it, to a wonderful quaint and pretty
fairy bower, backed by the Indian scenes sent by Mr. and Mrs. Bernard
Underwood, and that other lovely one of Primrose's pasture. There the merry musical laugh of her youth
was to be heard, as General Mohun came out with Lancelot to make a raid, order
the whole party to come and eat luncheon at Beechcroft Cottage, and not let
Mrs. Grinstead come out again.
"Oh, but I must finish
up Bernard's clay costume figures. Look
at the expression of that delightful dollie!
I'm sure he is watching the khitmutgars.
'Above on tallest trees remote
Green Ayahs perched alone;
And all night long the Mussah moaned
In melancholy tone.'
Oh, don't you know Lear's
poem? Can't we illustrate it?"
"Cherry, Cherry, you'll
be half dead to-morrow."
"Well, if I am, this is
the real fun. I shan't see the
destruction."
Lance had her arm in his
grip to take her over the bridge over the wall, when up rushed Kitty Varley.
"Oh, if Mrs. Grinstead
would come and look at our stall and set it right! Miss Vanderkist gave us hopes."
"Perhaps-—"
"Now, Cherry, don't you
know that you are not to be knocked up!
There are the Travises going to bring unlimited Vanderkists."
"Oh yes, I know; but
there's renovation in breaths from Vale Leston, and I really am of some use
here." Her voice really had a gay
ring in it. "It is such fun
too! Where's Gerald?"
"Having a smoke with
the buccaneer captain. Oh, Miss Mohun,
here's my sister, so enamoured of the bazaar I could hardly get her in."
"And oh! she is so
clever and delightful. She has made our
stall the most enchanting place," cried Primrose, dancing round. "Mamma, you must come and have it all
explained to you."
"The very sight is
supposed to be worth a shilling extra," said General Mohun, while Lady
Merrifield and Miss Mohun, taking possession of her, hoped she was not tired;
and Gillian, who had been wont to consider her as her private property, began
to reprove her sisters for having engrossed her while she herself was occupied
in helping the Hendersons with their art stall.
"The truth is,"
said Lance, "that this is my sister's first bazaar, and so dear is the
work to the female mind, that she can't help being sucked into the
vortex."
"Is it really?"
demanded Mysie, in a voice that made Mrs. Grinstead laugh and say—-
"Such is my woeful lack
of experience."
"We have fallen on a
bazaar wherever we went," said Lady Merrifield.
"But this is our first
grown-up one, mamma," said Valetta.
"There was only a sale of work before."
They all laughed, and Lance
said—-
"To Stoneborough they
seem like revenues—-at least sales of work, for I can't say I understand the
distinction."
"Recurring
brigandages," said General Mohun.
"Ah! Uncle Reggie has never forgotten his getting
a Noah's ark in a raffle," said Mysie.
So went the merry talk,
while one and another came in at Miss Mohun's verandah windows to be sustained
with food and rest, and then darted forth again to renew their labours until
the evening, Miss Mohun flying about everywhere on all sorts of needs, and her
brother the General waiting by the dining-room to do the duties of hospitality
to the strays of the families who dropped in, chattering and laughing, and
exhausted.
Lady Merrifield was
authorized to detain Mrs. Grinstead to the last moment possible to either, and
they fell into a talk on the morality of bazaars, which, as Lady Merrifield
said, had been a worry to her everywhere, while Geraldine had been out of their
reach; since the Underwoods had done everything without begging, and Clement
disapproved of them without the most urgent need; but, as Lance had said, his
wife had grown up to them, and had gone through all the stages from delighting,
acquiescing, and being bored, and they had so advanced since their early days,
from being simply sales to the grand period of ornaments, costumes, and
anything to attract.
"Clement
consents," said Geraldine; "as, first, it is not a church, and then,
though it does seem absurd to think that singing through the murdered Tempest
should be aiding the cause of the Church, yet anything to keep our children to
learning faith and truth is worthy work."
"Alas, it is working
against the stream! How things are
changed when school was our romance and our domain."
"Yes, you should hear
Lance tell the story of his sister-in-law Ethel, how she began at Cocksmoor,
with seven children and fifteen shillings, and thought her fortune made when
she got ten pounds a year for the school-mistress; and now it is all Mrs.
Rivers can do to keep out the School-board, because they had not a separate
room for the hat-pegs!"
"We never had those
struggles. We had enough to do to live
at all in our dear old home days, except that my brother always taught Sunday
classes. But anyway, this is very amusing. Those young people's characters come out so
much. Ah, Gerald, what is it?"
For Gerald was coming up to
the verandah with a very pretty, dark-eyed, modest-looking girl in a sailor
hat, who shrank back as he said—-
"I am come to ask for
some luncheon for my—-my Mona. She has
had nothing to eat all day, and we still have the grand recognition scene to
come."
At which the girl blushed so
furiously that the notion crossed Geraldine that he must have been flirting
with the poor little tobacconist's daughter; but Lady Merrifield was exclaiming
that he too had had nothing to eat, and General Mohun came forth to draw them
into the dining-room, where he helped Ludmilla to cold lamb, salad, etc., and
she sat down at Gerald's signal, very timidly, so that she gave the idea of
only partaking because she was afraid to refuse.
Gerald ate hurriedly and
nervously, and drank claret cup. He
said they were getting on famously, his uncle's chief strength being expended
in drawing out the voice of the buccaneer captain, and mitigating the
boatswain. Where were the little
boys? Happily disposed of. Little Felix had gone through his part, and
then Fergus had carried him and Adrian off together to Clipstone to see his
animals, antediluvian and otherwise.
Then in rushed Gillian,
followed by Dolores.
"Oh, mother!"
cried Gillian, "there's a fresh instalment of pots and pans come in, such
horrid things some of them! There's a
statue in terra-cotta, half as large as life, of the Dirty Boy. Geraldine, do pray come and see what can be
done with him. Kalliope is in utter
despair, for they come from Craydon's, and to offend them would be fatal."
"Kalliope and the Dirty
Boy," said Mrs. Grinstead, laughing.
"A dreadful
conjunction; I must go and see if it is possible to establish the line between
the sublime and the ridiculous."
"Shall I ask your
nephew's leave to let you go," said Lady Merrifield, "after all the
orders I have received?"
"Oh, no-—" she
began, but Gerald had jumped up.
"I'll steer you over
the drawbridge, Cherie, if go you must.
Yes,"-—to the young ladies-—"I appreciate your needs. Nobody has the same faculty in her fingers
as this aunt of mine. Come along, Mona,
it is Mrs. Henderson's stall, you know."
Ludmilla came, chiefly
because she was afraid to be left, and Lady Merrifield could not but come too,
meeting on the way Anna, come to implore help in arranging the Dirty Boy,
before Captain Henderson knocked his head off, as he was much disposed to do.
Gillian had bounded on
before with a handful of sandwiches, but Dolores tarried behind, having let the
General help her to the leg of a chicken, which she seemed in no haste to
dissect. Her uncle went off on some
other call before she had finished, eating and drinking with the bitter sauce
of reflection on the fleeting nature of young men's attentions and even
confidences, and how easily everything was overthrown at sight of a pretty
face, especially in the half-and-half class.
She had only just come out into the verandah, wearily to return to the
preparations, which had lost whatever taste they had for her, when she saw
Gerald Underwood springing over the partition wall. Her impulse was to escape him, but it was too late; he came
eagerly up to her, saying—-
"She is safe with Mrs.
Henderson. I am to go back for her when
our duet comes on."
Dolores did not want to
lower herself by showing jealousy or offence, but she could not help turning
decidedly away, saying—-
"I am wanted."
"Are you? I wanted to tell you why I am so interested
in her. Dolores, can you hear me
now?—-she is my sister."
"Your sister!" in
utter amaze.
"Every one says they
see it in the colour of our eyes."
"Every one"-—she
seemed able to do nothing but repeat his words.
"Well, my uncle
Lancelot, and—-and my mother. No one
else knows yet. They want to spare my
aunt till this concern is over."
"But how can it
be?"
"It is a horrid
business altogether!" he said, taking her down to the unfrequented parts
of the lower end of the garden, where they could walk up and down hidden by the
bushes and shrubs. "You knew that
my father was an artist and musician, who fled from over patronage."
"I think I have heard
so."
"He married a
singing-woman, and she grew tired of him, and of me, deserted and divorced him
in Chicago, when I was ten months old.
He was the dearest, most devoted of fathers, till he and I were devoured
by the Indians. If they had completed
their operations on my scalp, it would have been all the better for me. Instead of which Travis picked me up,
brought me home, and they made me as much of an heir of all the traditions as
nature would permit, all ignoring that not only was my father Bohemian ingrain,
but that my mother was—-in short-—one of the gipsies of civilization. They never expected to hear of her again,
but behold, the rapturous discovery has taken place. She recognised Lance, the only one of the family she had ever
seen before, and then the voice of blood-—more truly the voice of £ s.
d.-—exerted itself."
"How was it she did not
find you out before?"
"My father seems to
have concealed his full name; I remember his being called Tom Wood. She married in her own line after casting
him off, and this pretty little thing is her child—-the only tolerable part of
it."
"But she cannot have
any claim on you," said Dolores, with a more shocked look and tone than
the words conveyed.
"Not she-—in reason;
but the worst of it is, Dolores, that the wretched woman avers that she
deceived my father, and had an old rascally tyrant of an Italian husband, who
might have been alive when she married."
"Gerald!"
Dolores stood still and
looked at him with her eyes opened in horror.
"Yes, you may well say
Gerald. 'Tis the only name I have a
right to if this is true."
"But you are still
yourself," and she held out her hand.
He did not take it, however,
only saying—-
"You know what this
means?"
"Of course I do, but
that does not alter you—-yourself in yourself."
"If you say that,
Dolores, it will only alter me to make me-—more-—more myself."
She held out her hand again,
and this time he did take it and press it, but he started, dropped it, and
said—-
"It is not fair."
"Oh yes, it is. I know what it means," she repeated,
"and it makes no difference," and this time it was she who took his
hand.
"It means that unless
this marriage is disproved, or the man's death proved, I am an outcast,
dependent on myself, instead of the curled darling the Grinsteads—-blessings on
them!-—have brought me up."
"I don't know whether I
don't like you better so," exclaimed she, looking into his clear eyes and
fine open face, full of resolution, not of shame.
"While you say
so-—" He broke off. "Yes,
thus I can bear it better. The estate
is almost an oppression to me. The
Bohemian nature is in me, I suppose. I
had rather carve out life for myself than have the landlord business loaded on
my shoulders. Clement and Lance will
make the model parson and squire far better than I. 'The Inspector's Tour' was a success—-between that and the
Underwood music there's no fear but I shall get an independent career."
"Oh! that is
noble! You will be much more than your
old self-—as you said."
"The breaking of
Cherie's heart is all that I care about," said he. "To her I was comfort, almost
compensation for those brothers. I
don't know how-—" He paused.
"We'll let her alone till all this is over; so, Dolores, not one
word to any one."
"No, no, no!" she
exclaimed. "I will-—I will be true to you through everything, Gerald; I
will wait till you have seen your way, and be proud of you through all."
"Then I can bear it-—I
have my incentive," he said.
"First, you see, I must try to rescue my sister. I do not think it will be hard, for the
maternal heart seems to be denied to that woman. Then proofs must be sought, and according as they are found or
not—-"
Loud calls of
"Gerald" and "Mr. Underwood" began to resound. He finished—-
"Must be the
future."
"Our
future," repeated Dolores.
She came, she is gone, we
have met,
And meet perhaps never
again.-—COWPER.
The evening of that day was
a scene of welcomes, dinners, and confusion.
The Rotherwoods had arrived that evening at the Cliff Hotel just in time
for dinner, of which they considerately partook where they were, to save Jane
Mohun trouble; but all four of the party came the instant it was over to hear
and see all that was going on, and were fervently received by Gillian and
Mysie, who were sleeping at their aunt's to be ready for the morrow, and in
spite of all fatigue, had legs wherewith to walk Lord Ivinghoe and Lady Phyllis
round the stalls, now closed up by canvas and guarded by police. Phyllis was only mournful not to have
assisted in the preparations, and heard all the fun that Mrs. Grinstead had
made. But over the wall of Carrara a
sight was seen for which no one was prepared—-no other than Maura White's
pretty classical face!
"Yes," she said,
"how could I be away from such an occasion? I made Uncle White bring me to London-—he had business there, you
know-—and then I descended on Kalliope, and wasn't she surprised! But I have a lovely Italian dress!"
Kalliope Henderson looked
more alarmed than gratified on the whole.
She knew that there had been no idea of Maura's coming till after it had
been known that the Rotherwoods were to open the bazaar, and "made Uncle
White" was so unlike their former relations that all were startled,
Gillian asking in a tone of reproof how Aunt Adeline spared Maura.
"Oh, we shall be back
at Gastein in less than a week. I could
not miss such an occasion."
"I only had her telegram
half-an-hour ago," said Kalliope, in an apologetic tone; and Lord Ivinghoe
was to be dimly seen handing Maura over the fence. Moonlight gardens and moonlight sea! What was to be done? And
Ivinghoe, who had begun life by being as exclusive as the Marchioness
herself! "People take the bit
between their teeth nowadays," as Jane observed to Lady Rotherwood when
the news reached her, and neither said, though each felt, that Adeline would
not have promoted this expedition, even for the child whom she and Mr. White
had conspired to spoil. Each was
secretly afraid of the attraction for Ivinghoe.
At St. Andrew's Rock there
was a glad meeting with the Travis Underwoods, who had disposed of themselves
at the Marine Hotel, while they came up with a select party of three
Vanderkists to spend the evening with Clement, Geraldine, and Lancelot, not to
mention Adrian, who had been allowed to sit up to dinner to see his sisters,
and was almost devoured by them. His
growth, and the improved looks of both his uncle and aunt, so delighted
Marilda, that Lancelot declared the Rockquay people would do well to have them
photographed "Then" and "Now," as an advertisement of the
place! But he was not without dread of
the effect of the disclosure that had yet to be made, though Gerald had
apparently forgotten all about it as he sat chaffing Emilia Vanderkist about
the hospital, whither she was really going for a year; Sophy about the engineer
who had surveyed the Penbeacon intended works, and Francie about her
Miranda-Mona in strange hands.
The Vanderkists all began
life as very pretty little girls, but showed more or less of the Hollander
ancestry as they grow up. Only
Franceska, content with her Dutch name, had shot up into a beautiful figure,
together with the fine features and complexion of the Underwood twins, and the
profuse golden flax hair of her aunt Angela, so that she took them all by
surprise in the pretty dress presented by Cousin Marilda, and chosen by
Emilia. Sophy was round and short, as
nearly plain as one with the family likeness could be, but bright and joyous,
and very proud of her young sister. It
was a merry evening.
In fact, Lance himself was
so much carried away by the spirit of the thing, and so anxious about the
performance, that he made all the rest, including Clement, join in singing
Autolycus's song, which was to precede the procession, to a new setting of his
own, before they dispersed.
But Lance was beginning to
dress in the morning when a knock came to his door.
"A note from Mr.
Flight, please, sir."
The note was—-"Circus
and Schnetterlings gone off in the night!
Shop closed! Must performance be
given up?"
The town was all over red
and blue posters! But Lance felt a wild
hope for the future, and a not ill-founded one for the present. He rushed into his clothes, first pencilling
a note—-
"Never say die. L. 0. U."
Then he hurried off, and
sent up a message to Miss Franceska Vanderkist, to come and speak to him, and
he walked up and down the sitting-room where breakfast was being spread, like a
panther, humming Prospero's songs, or murmuring vituperations, till Franceska
appeared, a perfect picture of loveliness in her morning youthful freshness.
"Francie, there's no
help for it. You must take Mona! She has absconded!"
"Uncle Lance!"
"Yes, gone off in the
night; left us lamenting."
"The horrible
girl!"
"Probably not her
fault, poor thing! But that's neither
here nor there. I wish it was!"
"But I thought-—"
"It is past thinking
now, my dear. Here we are, pledged. Can't draw back, and you are the only being
who can save us! You know the
part."
"Yes, in a way."
"You did it with me at
home."
"Oh yes; but, Uncle
Lance, it would be too dreadful before all these people."
"Never mind the
people. Be Mona, and only think of
Alaster and Angus."
"But what would mamma
say, or Aunt Wilmet? And Uncle
Clem?" each in a more awe-stricken voice.
"I'll tackle
them."
"I know I shall be
frightened and fail, and that will be worse."
"No, it won't, and you
won't. Look here, Francie, this is not
a self-willed freak for our own amusement.
The keeping up the Church schools here depends upon what we can
raise. I hate bazaars. I hate to have to obtain help for the Church
through these people's idle amusement, but you and I have not two or three
thousands to give away to a strange place in a lump; but we have our
voices. 'Such as I have give I thee,'
and this ridiculous entertainment may bring in fifty or maybe a hundred. I don't feel it right to let it collapse for
the sake of our own dislikes."
"Very well, Uncle
Lance, I'll do as you tell me."
"That's the way to do
it, my dear. At least, when you make
ready, recollect, not that you are facing a multitude, but that you are saving
a child's Christian faith; when you prepare, that you have to do with nobody
but Gerald and me; when it comes to 'One, two, three, and away,' mind nothing
but your music and your cue."
"But the dress,
uncle?"
"The dress is all safe
at the pavilion. You must come up and
rehearse as soon as you have eaten your breakfast. Oh, you don't know where.
Well, one of us will come and fetch you. Good girl, Francie! Keep
up your heart. By the bye, which is
Fernan's dressing-room? I must prepare
him."
That question was answered,
for Sir Ferdinand's door into the corridor was opened.
"Lance! I thought I heard your voice."
"Yes, here's a pretty
kettle of fish! Our Miranda has
absconded, poor child. Happy thing you
brought down Francie; nobody else could take the part at such short notice. You must pacify Marilda, silence scruples,
say it is her duty to Church, country, and family. Can't stop!"
"Lance,
explain-—do! Music-mad as usual!"
cried Sir Ferdinand, pursuing him down-stairs in despair.
"I must be
music-mad; the only chance of keeping sane just now. There's an awful predicament!
Can't go into it now, but you shall hear all when this is over."
Wherewith Lance was lost to
view, and presently burst into St. Kenelm's Vicarage, to the relief of poor Mr.
Flight, who had tried to solace himself with those three words as best he
might.
"All right. My niece, Franceska Vanderkist, who took the
part before, and who has a very good soprano, will do it better as to voice, if
not so well as to acting, as the Little Butterfly."
"Is she here?"
"Yes, by good
luck. I shall have her up to the
pavilion to rehearse her for the afternoon."
"Mr. Underwood, no
words can say what we owe you. You are
the saving of our Church education."
Lance laughed at the
magniloquent thanks, and asked how the intimation had been received.
It appeared that on the
previous evening O'Leary had come to him, and, in swaggering fashion, had
demanded twenty pounds as payment for his step-daughter's performance at the
masque. Mr. Flight had replied that she
had freely promised her services gratuitously for the benefit of the object in
view. At this the man had scoffed,
talked big about her value and the meanness of parsons, and threatened to
withdraw her. Rather weakly the
clergyman had said the question should be considered, but that he could do
nothing without the committee, and O'Leary had departed, uttering abuse.
This morning "Sweetie
Bob," the errand-boy, had arrived crying, with tidings that the shop and
house were shut up; nobody answered his knock; Mother Butterfly had
"cut" in the night, gone off, he believed, with the circus, and Miss
Lydia too; and there was two-and-ninepence owing to him, besides his-—his-—his
character!
He knew that Mother
Butterfly had gone to the magistrates' meeting the day before, and paid her
fine of twenty-five pounds, and he also believed that she had paid up her rent,
and sold her shop to a neighbouring pastry-cook, but he had never expected her
to depart in this sudden way, and then he began to shed fresh tears over his
two-and-ninepence and his character.
Mr. Flight began to reassure
him, with promises to speak for him as an honest lad, while Lance bethought
himself of the old organist's description of that wandering star, "Without
home, without country, without morals, without religion, without
anything," and recollected with a shudder that turning-point in his life
when Edgar had made him show off his musical talent, and when Felix had been
sharp with him, and the office of the 'Pursuivant' looked shabby, dull, and
dreary.
Nothing more could be done,
except to make bold assurances to Mr. Flight that Mona's place should be
supplied, and then to hurry home, meeting on his way a policeman, who told him
that the circus was certainly gone away, and promised to let him know whither.
He was glad to find that
Gerald had not come down-stairs, having overslept himself in the morning after
a wakeful night. He was dressing when
his uncle knocked at his door.
"Here is a shock,
Gerald! I hope it is chiefly to our
masque.
These people have absconded,
and carried off our poor little Mona."
"What? Absconded?
My sister! I must be after them
instantly," cried Gerald, wildly snatching at his coat.
"What good would that
do? you can't carry her off vi et armis."
"Send the police."
"No possibility. The fine is paid, the rent and all. They have gone, it seems, with the
circus."
"Ah! Depend upon it that fellow has paid the
fine, and bought the poor child into slavery with it. Carried her off in spite of our demurring, and the Vicar's
prosecution. I must save her. I'll go after and outbid."
"No hurry, Gerald. A circus is not such a microscopical object
but that it can be easily traced. A
policeman has promised to find out where, and meanwhile we must attend to our
present undertaking."
Gerald strode up and down
the room in a fiery fit of impatience and indignation, muttering furious
things, quite transformed from the listless, ironical youth hitherto known to
his family.
"Come," Lancelot
said, "our first duty is to do justice to our part; Francie Vanderkist
will take Mona."
"Hang Mona! you care
for nothing on earth but your fiddling and songs."
"I do not see that
being frantic will make any difference to the situation. All in our power is being done. Meanwhile, we must attend to what we have
undertaken."
Gerald rushed about a little
more, but finally listened to his uncle's representation that the engrossing
employment was good to prevent the peril of disturbing the two whom they were
so anxious to spare. Fely came running
up with a message that Aunt Cherie and Anna had been sent for to see about the
decorations of the art stall, and that they would have to eat their breakfast
without them.
Appetite for breakfast was
lacking, but Lance forced himself to swallow, as one aware of the consequences
of fasting for agitation's sake, and he nearly crammed Gerald; so that Adrian
and Fely laughed, and he excused himself by declaring that he wanted his
turkey-cock to gobble and not pipe. For
which bit of pleasantry he encountered a glare from Gerald's Hungarian
eyes. He was afraid on one side to lose
sight of his nephew, on the other he did not feel equal to encounter a scolding
from Marilda, so he sent Adrian and Fely down to the Marine Hotel to fetch Franceska,
while he stole a moment or two for greeting Clement, who was much better, and
only wanted more conversation than he durst give him.
Your honour's players,
hearing your amendment,
Are come to play a pleasant
comedy.
Taming of the Shrew.
Poor Franceska! First she encountered Cousin Marilda's
wonder and displeasure, and the declaration that Uncle Lance went absolutely
crazy over his musical mania. She had
seen it before in poor Edgar, and knew what it came to. She wanted to telegraph at once to Alda to
ask her consent or refusal to Franceska's appearance; but Sir Ferdinand stopped
this on the ground that the circumstances could not be explained, and told her
to content herself with Clement's opinion.
This she sent Sophy and Emilia
to ascertain, before she would let them and the boys escort Francie to her
destination. Clement, not yet up, had
to hold a lit de justice, and pronounce that Uncle Lance was to be fully
trusted to ask nothing unbecoming or unnecessary, and that Francie would have
nothing to do with any one except him and Gerald.
"Besides," said
Emilia, as they walked up, "nobody will find it out. The posters are all over the town, 'Mona,
Miss Ludmilla Schnetterling.'"
So the sisters were received
with a murmur on their delay. The
pretty dress prepared for Mona was found to be too small for the tall shapely
Franceska, and Sophy undertook to alter it, while poor Francie's troubles
began.
Whether it was that Uncle
Lance and Gerald were in a secret state of turmoil, or that their requirements
were a good deal higher than for the Vale Leston audience, or perhaps that she
had no inheritance of actress traditions, they certainly were a great deal
sharper with her than they had been ever before or with Ludmilla.
Gerald derided her efforts
sarcastically, and Uncle Lance found fault good-humouredly but seriously, and
she was nearly in tears by eleven o'clock, when the procession was to take
place. She was quite surprised when
Lance turned to her and said—-
"Thank you, my dear,
you are doing capitally. I shall be
proud of my daughter Mona."
Quite in spirits again, she
was sewn by Sophy into her still unfinished dress, her beautiful light golden
flax tresses were snooded, her Highland scarf pinned on her shoulder, and she hurried
to her uncle, now be-robed and be-wigged, with Gerald in full Highland garb,
looking very much disgusted, especially when her uncle said—-
"Well done,
Francie. You'll cut that poor little
thing out in looks and voice, if not in acting."
"Oh, uncle, I sang so
horridly."
"You can do better if
you try; I wish there was time to train you.
We'll do the 'logs duet' once more after this tomfoolery. Ha! Captain
Armytage. You are an awful pirate, and
no mistake. Where did you get that
splendid horse-pistol?"
"From my native home,
as well as my sword; but I wrote to Willingham for the rest. This will be an uncommonly pretty
march-past. The girls look so well, and
all out of doors too."
This was decidedly a great
advantage, the trees, grass, and blue sky lending a great grace to the
scene. The procession started from the
garden entrance of the hotel, headed by the town band in uniform, and the fire
brigade likewise, very proud of themselves, especially the little terrier whom
nothing would detach from one of the firemen.
Then came the four seasons belonging to the flower stall, appropriately
decked with flowers, the Italian peasants with flat veils, bright aprons, and
white sleeves, Maura White's beauty conspicuous in the midst, but with
unnecessary nods and becks. Then came
the "mediaeval" damsels in ruffs and high hats, the Highland maidens,
with Valetta and Primrose giggling unmanageably; and Aunt Jane's troop of the
various costumes of charity children, from the green frocks, long mittens, and tall
white caps, and the Jemima Placid flat hats and long waists, down to the red
cloaks, poke straw bonnets, and blue frocks of the Lady Bountiful age. These were followed by the merry fairies and
elves; then by the buccaneers and the captive prisoners; and the rear was
brought up by MacProspero, as Lord Rotherwood called him, with his niece on his
arm and his nephew by his side.
When the central stall, or
bothie, in the Carrara grounds was reached, after passing in full state and
order over two of the bridges, the procession halted before a group of the
Rotherwood family, Sir Jasper and Lady Merrifield, Lady Flight, and other local
grandees, with the clergy, who had declined to walk in procession. There the performers spread themselves out,
singing Autolycus's song, led of course by MacProspero; Lady Rotherwood, with
as much dignity as the occasion permitted, declared the bazaar open, and the
Marquis hoped every one was going to ruin themselves in the cause of Christian
education.
The first idea of "every
one" was luncheon, except that Lance laid hands on his unfortunate Angus
and Mona for their duet, in the midst of which Lord Rotherwood made a raid on
them.
"There! I'm sure Prospero never was so cruel as to
starve what's-his-name! Come in and
have some food-—it is just by."
They found themselves in a
dining-room, in the presence of Lady Rotherwood, her son and daughter, and a
sprinkling of Merrifields and actors, in full swing of joyous chatter; Mysie
and Lady Phyllis telling all that was specially to be admired, and Lord
Rotherwood teasing them about the prices, and their wicked extortions in the
name of goodness, Gillian snubbing poor Captain Armytage in his splendid
buccaneer dress, Ivinghoe making himself agreeable to Franceska, whose
heightened carnation tints made her doubly lovely through her shyness. Gerald and Dolores in the less lively
vicinity of the Marchioness carrying on a low-toned conversation, which,
however, enabled Gerald to sustain nature with food better than he had done at
breakfast.
It did not last long. The sellers had to rush off to relieve those
who had begun the sale, and the performance was to commence at three o'clock,
so that the final preparations had to be hurried through.
Geraldine had made the tour
of the stalls on the arm of Anna, to admire them in their first freshness, and
put finishing touches wherever solicited.
The Rocca Marina conservatories were in rare glory, orchids in weird
beauty, lovely lilies of all hues, fabulously exquisite ipomoeas, all that
heart could wish. Before them a
fountain played in the midst of blue, pink, and white lotus lilies, and in a
flower-decked house the Seasons dispensed pot-flowers, bouquets, and
button-holes; the Miss Simmondses and their friends with simpering graces, that
made Geraldine glad to escape and leave them to the young men who were
strolling up. At Carrara was the stall
in which she was chiefly interested, and which had been arranged with a certain
likeness to Italian gardens, the statues and other devices disposed among
flowers; the Dirty Boy judiciously veiled by the Puzzle Monkey, and the front
of the summer-house prolonged by pillars, sham but artistic. Jasper was zealously photographing group
after group, handing his performances over to his assistant for printing
off. Kalliope looked in her costume
most beautiful and dignified. Her
sister, grown to almost equal beauty, was hurrying off to see the masque,
flushed and eager, while Gillian and one or two others were assisting in sales
that would be rather slack till after the performance. Here Geraldine purchased only a couple of
Mouse-traps, leaving further choice to be made after the stranger
purchasers. Here Sir Jasper and General
Mohun came up, and gave her a good deal of curious information about Bernard's
bevy of figures in Indian costumes; and having the offer of such a strong arm
as the General's, she dispensed with Anna, who was really wanted to help with
the very popular photographs.
They passed the
refreshments, at present chiefly haunted by Mrs. Edgar's boys, ready to eat at
any time of day; they looked civilly at the Varley Elizabethans, and found Lady
Merrifield in the midst o£ her bothie, made charming with fresh green branches
and purple heather, imported by the Vanderkists.
"That's Penbeacon ling. I know that red tint in the mauve,"
said Geraldine; "I'll give you half-a-crown, if your decorations can spare
that spiring spray!" And she put
it in her bosom, after touching it with her lips. "You have a bower for the Lady of the Lake," she added.
"I'm afraid I'm only
Roderick Dhu's mother," laughed Lady Merrifield; "but I shall have
more ladies when the masque is done.
Now I have only Mysie."
"And oh!" cried
Mysie, "please set up the nurse in the nursery gardens right. Wilfred knocked her over, and she won't
stand right for me."
"Perverse woman. There!
No, I shall not buy anything now, I shall wait for Primrose and the
refuse. How pretty it does all look! Ah, Mr. Brownlow," as she shook hands
with the curate.
"I left my brother John
at your house," he said; "I persuaded him to run down this morning
with my mother and see our doings, and he was glad of the opportunity of
looking in upon the Vicar."
"How very kind of
him. We were wishing to know what he
thought!"
"No doubt he will be
here presently. My mother is at the
masque. There was not a seat for us, so
I took him down to St. Andrew's Rock."
"Not a seat! The five-shilling seats?"
"Not the fraction of
one. Numbers standing outside! Pity there can't be a second
performance."
"Four hundred
seats! That's a hundred pounds! We shall beat the School-board yet!"
So, with the General
politely expressing that there was no saying what Rockquay owed to the hearty
co-operation of such birds of passage as herself and her brothers, she travelled
on to the charity stall, which Miss Mohun had quaintly dressed in the likeness
of an old-fashioned school, with big alphabet and samplers, flourished copies,
and a stuffed figure of a 'cont-rare-y' naughty boy, with a magnificent fool's
cap. She herself sat behind it, the
very image of the Shenstone school-mistress, with wide white cap, black
poke-bonnet, crossed kerchief, red cloak, and formidable rod; and her myrmidons
were in costume to match. It was very
attractive, and took every one by surprise, but Geraldine had had enough by
this time, and listened to Miss Mohun's invitation and entreaty that she would
preside over tea-cups for the weary, in the drawing-room. The privacy of the houses had been secured
by ropes extending from the stalls to the rails of the garden, and Geraldine
was conducted by her two generals to the verandah, where they installed her,
and lingered, as was usual with her squires, always won by her spirited talk,
till messages came to each of them from below that some grandee was come, who
must be talked to and entertained.
Already, however, Armine
Brownlow had brought up his brother, the doctor-—John or Jock, an old
friend-—over, first Clement's district and then his bed.
"Well, Mrs. Grinstead,
I can compliment you much on your brother.
He is very materially
better, and his heart is recovering tone."
"I am very glad and
thankful! I only wish you had seen him
last week. He was better then, but he
had a worry about our little nephew, which threw him back."
"So he told me. The more quiescent and amused you can keep
him, the more chance of a fair recovery there will be. I am glad he thinks of dining with the party
to-night."
"I am glad he still
thinks. I had to come away early, when
he had still left it doubtful."
"I encouraged the idea
with all my might."
"Do you think he will
be able to go back to his parish?"
"Most assuredly not
while every worry tells on him in this manner.
You must, if possible, take him abroad for the winter, before he begins
to think about it."
"He has leave of
absence for a year."
"Dating from Easter, I
think. Keep him in warm climates as
long as you can. Find some country to
interest him without over-fatigue, and you will, I hope, be able to bring him
home fit to consider the matter."
"That is all you
promise?"
"All I dare—-not even
to promise-—but to let you hope for."
An interruption came; one of
the young ladies had had her skirt trodden on, and wanted it to be stitched
up. Then came Jane Mohun to deposit a
handkerchief which some one had dropped.
"I can stay a moment," she said; "no one will come to buy
till the masque is ended. Oh, this red
cloak will be the death of me!"
"You look highly
respectable without it."
"I shall only put it on
for the coup d'oeil at first. Oh, Geraldine,
what is to be done with that horrid little Maura?"
"The pretty little
Greek girl-—Mrs. Henderson's sister?"
"Oh! it is not Mrs.
Henderson's fault, nor my sister Ada's either, except that the little wretch
must have come round her. I know Ada
meant to stay away on that very account."
"What account?"
"Ivinghoe's, to be
sure! Oh! I forgot. You are so much
one of us that I did not remember that you did not know how the foolish boy was
attracted-—no, that's too strong a word—-but she thought he was, when they were
here to open Rotherwood Park. He did
flirt, and Victoria-—his mother, I mean-—did not like it at all. She would never have come this time, but
that I assured her that Maura was safe at Gastein!"
"Is it so very
undesirable?"
"My dear! Their father was old White's brother, a
stone-mason. He was raised from the
ranks, but his wife was a Greek peasant-—and if you had seen her, when the
Merrifield children called her the Queen of the White Ants! Ivinghoe is naturally as stiff and formal as
his mother, I am not much afraid for him, except that no one knows what that
fever will make of a young man, and I don't want him to get his father into a
scrape. There, I have exhaled it to
you, and there is a crowd as if the masque was done with."
It was, and the four hundred
auditors were beginning to throng about the stalls, strays coming up from time
to time, and reporting with absolute enthusiasm on the music and acting. Marilda was one of these.
"Well, Cherry, I saw no
great harm in it after all, and Francie looked sweetly pretty, just as poor
Alda did when she first came to us.
Lance must make his own excuses to Alda. But Gerald looked horridly ill!
He sang very well, but he had such red spots on his cheeks! I'd get Clement's doctor to sound him. Lord Rotherwood was quite
complimentary. Now I must go and buy
something—-I hear there is the Dirty Boy-—I think I shall get it for Fernan's
new baths and wash-houses. Then isn't
there something of yours, Cherry?"
"Not to compete with
the Dirty Boy."
"Ah! now you are
laughing at me, Cherry. Quite right, I
am glad to hear you do it again."
The next visitor was Lance.
"Oh, Cherry, how cool
you look! Give me a cup of tea-—not
refreshment-stall tea. That's
right. Little Francie is a perfect gem-—looks
and voice—-not acting-—no time for that.
Heigh-ho!"
"Where's Gerald?"
"Somewhere about after
that Merrifield niece with the doleful name, I fancy. He did very well when it came to the scratch."
"Have you seen Dr.
Brownlow? He has been to see
Clement."
"That's
first-rate! Where shall I find
him?"
"Somewhere about,
according to your lucid direction, I suppose."
"What does he think of
old Tina?"
Geraldine told him, and was
rather surprised, when he whistled as though perplexed, and as Fergus rushed
in, glorious with the news that Sir Ferdinand had bought his collection of
specimens for the Bexley museum, he rose up, looking perturbed, to find Dr.
Brownlow.
Next came Gillian with news
that the Dirty Boy was sold to Lady Travis Underwood.
"And mayn't I stay a
moment or two?" said she.
"Now the masque is over, that Captain Armytage is besetting me
again."
"Poor Captain
Armytage."
"Why do you pity
him? He is going to join his ship, the
Sparrow Hawk, next week, and that ought to content him."
"Ships do not always
fill a man's heart."
"Then they ought. I don't like it," she added, in a
petulant tone. "I have so much to
learn and to do, I don't want to be tormented about a tiresome man."
"Well, he will be out
of your way to-morrow."
"Geraldine, that is a
horrid tone."
"If you choose to put
meaning in it, I cannot help it."
"And that horrid little
Maura! She is in the most awful
flutter, standing on tiptoe, and craning out her foolish little neck. I know it is all after Ivinghoe, and he
never has come to our counter! Kalliope
has been trying to keep her in order, but I'm sure the Queen of the White Ants
must have been just like that when she got poor Captain White to marry her. Kalliope is so much vexed, I can see. She never meant to have her here. And Aunt Ada stayed away on purpose."
"Has she seen much of
him?"
"Hardly anything; but
he did admire her, and she never was like Kalliope. But what would Aunt Ada do?
Oh dear! there's that man! He
has no business at Aunt Jane's charity stall.
I shall go and tell him so."
Geraldine had her little
private laugh before Adrian came up to her with a great ship in his arms—-
"Take care of this,
Aunt Cherry. She is going to sail on
the Ewe.
I bought her with the
sovereign Uncle Fernan gave me."
Geraldine gave the ship her
due admiration, and asked after the masque.
"Oh, that went off
pretty well. I wouldn't have been
Fely! All the ladies went and said
'Pretty dear!' when he sang his song about the bat's back.
Disgusting! But then he has not been a fellow at school,
so he made his bow and looked as if he didn't mind it."
"And Francie?"
"Francie looked
perfectly stunning. Everybody said so,
and she sang-—well, she sang better than she did at home; but she was in an
awful funk, though I kept on looking at her, and shouting bravo to encourage
her; and she must have heard my voice, for I was just in front."
"I hope she was
encouraged."
"But she is very
stupid. I wanted to take her round to
all the stalls, and show her what to buy with the five Jubilee sovereigns Uncle
Fernan gave her, for you know she has never been anywhere, or seen
anything. I thought she would like it,
and besides, all our fellows say they never saw such an awfully pretty girl,
and they can't believe all that hair is her own—-she had it all down her back,
you know-—so I told them I would let them have a pull to try."
"Poor Francie! She declined, I suppose?"
"Well, there was that
ridiculous swell, Fergus's cousin, Ivinghoe, and he has taken her off to see
the stupid flowers in the conservatory.
I told Sophy I wondered she permitted such flirting, but of course
Francie knew no better."
"Oh! and you couldn't
stop it?"
"Not I, though I called
her over and over again to look at things, but Lord Ivinghoe always hung about
and gave one no peace. So I just told
Sophy to look after her, and came off to tell you. Oh my! here is old Miss Mohun coming up. I shall be off. I want some chocolate creams.
Mrs. Simmonds has got some splendid ones."
Miss Mohun was coming, in
fact.
"Well, Geraldine, the
masque was a great success. People beg
to have it repeated, so many could not get in.
And it is worth at least a hundred pounds to us. People whose opinion is worth having were
quite struck. They say your brother
really ought to have been a great composer and singer."
"I think he might have
been if he had not given up his real passion to come to the help of my dear
eldest brother. And he is really
happier as he is."
"I knew there was
conquest in his face. And that dear
little elf of a boy-—what a voice! So
bright and so arch too. Then the
Miranda—-she took all by surprise. I
believe half the spectators took her for the Little Butterfly."
"Ah, the poor Little
Butterfly is flown. There was nothing
for it but to make Francie act, as she had taken the part once before."
"Her acting was no
great things, they say-—ladylike, but frightened. Her voice is lovely, and as to her looks-—people rave about
them. Tell me, she is not Lady Travis
Underwood's daughter?"
"Oh no; she is Anna's
sister, Adrian's sister."
"So I told Lady
Rotherwood, I was sure it was so."
"The Travis Underwoods
have no children, but they adopted Emilia when I took Anna, and they have
brought three Vanderkists to this affair.
Francie has never been from home before, it is all quite new to
her." Then recollecting what
Adrian had repeated, she thought it fair to add, "My sister was left very
badly off, and all these eight girls will have nothing of their own."
"Well, I don't suppose
anything will come of it. I hope it
will put no folly into her head; but at any rate it effaces that poor silly
little Maura. I hope too, as you say
your niece is so innocent, it will do her no harm."
"I don't suppose any
possibilities have occurred to the child."
Lord Rotherwood here came on
the scene.
"Jenny, there's an
offer for your boy in the fool's cap, and Mysie doubts if she ought to let him
go. Well, Mrs. Grinstead, I think you
have the best of it. Lookers on, etc."
"Looking on has always
been my trade."
"You heard the
rehearsal of the masque, I believe, but you did not hear that charming
Mona?"
"No; she had to take
the part suddenly. Her uncle had to
tyrannize over her, to save the whole thing."
"We are much indebted
to him, and to her," said Lord Rotherwood courteously. "She looked as if she hated it all in
the first scene, though she warmed up afterwards. I must say I liked her the better for her shyness."
"Her little brother
thinks she recovered in consequence of his applause," said Geraldine, smiling.
"Ah! I saw him. And heard.
A little square fellow-—very sturdy."
"Yes, the Dutchman
comes out in him, and he has droll similitudes, very curious in one who never
saw his father, nor any but his Underwood relations."
"So much the better for
him perhaps; I have, and ought to have, great faith in uncles' breeding. I am glad to meet Sir Ferdinand Travis
Underwood. I have often come across him
about London good works."
"Yes, he is an
excellent man."
"Not wholly English is
he, judging by the depth of colour in those eyes?"
"No; his mother was a
Mexican, partly Indian. We used to call
him the Cacique;" and Geraldine had the pleasure of telling his story to
an earnest listener, but interruption came in the shape of Sir Ferdinand
himself who announced that he had hired a steam-yacht wherein to view the
regatta, and begged Lord Rotherwood to join the party.
This was impossible, as the
Marquis was due at an agricultural dinner at Clarebridge, but in return, in the
openness of his heart, he invited the Travis Underwoods to their dinner that
evening at the hotel, where the Merrifields and the Underwoods were already
engaged, little boys and all.
"Thank you, my lord,
but we are too large a party. We have
three Vanderkist girls with us, and Anna and her brother are to join them to be
with their sister."
"Never mind, never
mind. The great hall will have room for
all."
Still Fernan demurred,
knowing that Marilda had ordered dinner at the Quay Hotel, and that even
liberal payment would not atone for missing the feasting of the millionaires;
so the matter was compounded by his promise to bring all his party, who were
not ready for bed, up to spend the evening.
And Geraldine perceived from
Lady Rotherwood's ceremonious politeness that she did not like it at all,
though she never said so even to Lady Merrifield.
However, it was a very
bright evening. Gerald had sung himself
into spirits, and then found Dolores, and retreated into the depths of the
garden with her, explaining to her all about his sister, and declaring that his
first object must be to rescue her; and then, unless his name was cleared, and
he had to resume all his obligations, the new life would be open to him, and he
had no fear of not succeeding as a journalist, or if not, a musical career was
possible to him, as Dolores had now the opportunity of fully perceiving. His sweet voice had indeed filled her with
double enthusiasm. She had her plan for
lecturing, and that very morning she had received from her father permission to
enter a ladies' college, and the wherewithal.
She would qualify herself for lecturing by the time he had fixed his
career; and they built their airy castles, not on earth, but on railroads and
cycles, and revelled on them as happily as is common to lovers, whether in castle
or in cottage. Certainly if the
prospect held out to her had been Vale Leston Priory, it would not have had the
same zest; and when in the evening they joined the dinner-party, there was a
wonderful look of purpose and of brightness on both their faces. And Emilia, who had been looking for him all
the afternoon to tell him, "Gerald, I am really going to be a nurse,"
only got for answer an absent "Indeed!"
"Yes, at St.
Roque's."
"I hope I shall never
be a patient there," he said, in his half-mocking tone. "You'll look jolly in the cap and
apron."
"I'm to be there all
the time they are in America, and-—"
"Well, I wonder you
don't go and study the institutions."
"But, Gerald--"
His eye was wandering, and
he sprang forward to give Dolores a flower that she had dropped.
Lancelot, knowing what was
before Gerald, and having always regarded Vale Leston with something of the
honours of Paradise, could not understand that joyous look of life, so unlike
Gerald's usual weary, passive expression.
He himself felt something of the depression that was apt to follow on
musical enjoyment; he saw all the failures decidedly enough not to be gratified
with the compliments he met on all sides, and "he bitterly thought on the
morrow," when he saw how Clement was getting animated over a discussion on
Church matters, and how Geraldine was enjoying herself. And as to that pretty Franceska, who had
blossomed into the flower of the flock, he foresaw heart-break for her when he
watched the Marchioness's countenance on hearing that her son had accepted Sir
Ferdinand's invitation to cruise to-morrow in the yacht.
Vainly was Ivinghoe reminded
of the agricultural dinner. He was only
too glad to escape it, and besides, he thought he could be there in time.
Nevertheless, the present
was delightful, and after dinner the young people all went off to the great
assembly-room, whence Anna came back to coax Uncle Lance to play for them. All the elders jumped up from their several
discussions. Even Lady Rotherwood moved
on, looking as benign as her feelings would permit. Jane squeezed Geraldine's arm, exceedingly amused. Lance struck up, by request, an
old-fashioned country dance; Lord Rotherwood insisted that "Lily"
should dance with him, as the remnant of forty good years ago or more, and with
Sir Roger de Coverley the day ended.
Poor little Maura, making an
excuse to wander about the gardens in the moonlight, saw the golden locks
shining through the open windows, and Lord Ivinghoe standing over them, went
home, and cried herself to sleep over the fickleness of the nobility, when she
had better have cried over her own unjustified romance, excited by a few kindly
speeches and a cup of tea.
And Emilia! What was Gerald's one laughing turn with
her, compared with his long talk with Dolores in the moonlight?
She saw a forget-me-not in
the grass,
Gilly-flower, gentle
rosemary,
Ah! why did the lady that
little flower pass,
While the dews fell over the
mulberry-tree?
KENEALY.
Such of the party as were
not wanted for the second day of the bazaar, and were not afraid of mal de mer,
had accepted the yachting invitation, except the three elders at St. Andrew's
Rock. Even Adrian and Felix were
suffered to go, under Sophy's charge, on the promise to go nowhere without
express permission, and not to be troublesome to any one.
"Sophy can say, 'Now,
boys,' as effectively as Wilmet," said Geraldine, when she met Lance, who
had been to the quay to see them off.
"She did not say so to
much advantage with her own boys," said Clement.
"We weren't
Harewoods," returned Lance, "and John never could bear to see a tight
hand over them; but there's good in them that will come out some day."
Clement gave an emphatic
"Humph!" as he sat down to the second breakfast after Anna had gone
to the cliff to resume her toils.
"Who are gone?"
asked Geraldine.
"Poor Marilda,
smilingly declaring she shall be in misery in the cabin all the time, Fernan,
and four Vanderkists, General Mohun, Sir Jasper, and some of his progeny; but
others stay to help Miss Mohun finish up the sales."
"Does Lord Ivinghoe
go?"
"Oh yes, he came
rushing down just in time. Francie was
looking like a morning rose off the cloister at Vale Leston."
"I am sorry they have
another day of it. I don't see how it
can come to good," said Geraldine.
"Perhaps her roses may
fade at sea," said Clement, "and disenchantment may ensue."
"At least I hope Alda
may not hear of it, or she will be in an agony of expectation as long as hope
lasts. Gerald is gone, of course?"
"Oh yes!" said
Lance, who had had a farewell from him with the words, "Get it over while
I am out of the way, and tell them I don't mind."
Cursory and
incomprehensible, but conclusive; and Lance, who minded enough to have lost
sleep and gained a headache, marvelled over young men's lightness and
buoyancy. He had seen Dr. Brownlow, and
arranged that there should be a call, as a friend, in due time after the
communication, in case it should hurt Clement, and when Geraldine observed
merrily that now they were quit of all the young ones they could feel like old
times, he was quite grieved to disturb her pleasure.
Clement, however, began by
taking out a letter and saying—-
"Here is a remarkable
missive left for me yesterday—-'If the Rev. Underwood wishes to hear of
something to his advantage, he should communicate with Mr. O'L., care of Mr.
John Bast, van proprietor, Whitechapel.'
An impostor?" said he.
"I am afraid not,"
said Lance. "Clement, I fear there
is no doubt that she is that singing Hungarian woman who was the ruin of
Edgar's life."
"Gerald's mother!"
exclaimed Geraldine.
"Even so."
"But she is gone! She gave up all rights. She can't claim anything. Has she worried him?"
"Yes, poor boy! She has declared that she had actually a
living husband at the time she married our poor Edgar."
Of course both broke out
into exclamations that it was impossible, and Lance had to tell them of his
interview with the woman at Gerald's entreaty.
They were neither of them so overcome by the disclosure as he had feared
during his long delay.
"I believe it is only
an attempt at extortion," said Clement.
"Very cruel," said
Geraldine. "How-—how did my poor
boy bear it all this time?"
"He was very much
knocked down at first, quite overwhelmed, but less by the loss than by the
shame, and the imputation on his father."
"It was no fault of
dear Edgar's."
"No, indeed. I am glad Fernan is here to go over again
what Edgar told him. We may be quite
satisfied so far."
"And is it needful to
take it up?" asked Geraldine wistfully.
"If we don't believe it, the horrid story would get quashed."
"No, Cherry," said
Clement. "If you think it over you
will see that we must investigate. I
should be relieved indeed to let it alone, but it would not be fair towards
Lance there and his boys."
Lance made a strange noise
of horror and deprecation, then added—-
"I don't believe Gerald
would consent to let it alone."
"No, now he knows, of
course. He is a right-minded, generous
boy," said Geraldine. "I was
wrong. Did you say he was very much
upset?"
"Just at first, when he
came to me at night. I was obliged to
dragoon him, and myself too, to throw it off enough to be able to get through
our performance yesterday. How thankful
I am to the regatta that it is not our duty to the country to go through it
again to-day! However, he seems to have
rebounded a good deal. He was about all
the latter part of the day with Miss Mohun."
"I saw him dancing and
laughing with some of them."
"And he parted from me
very cheerfully, telling me to assure you 'he did not mind,' whatever that may
mean."
"He knows that nothing
can disturb our love for him, Edgar's little comfort, passed on to bear us
up," said Cherry tearfully.
"Oh yes, I know what he meant-—Felix's delight, my darling
always."
"It strikes me,"
said Lance, "that if he can save his sister—-"
Geraldine started.
"Oh, the
cigar-girl! Only by that mother's
side."
"That is true, but she
is his half-sister, and he is evidently much drawn towards her. She is a nice little thing, and I believe he
made much of her on the rehearsal day.
I saw they got on much better together, and I think she was aware of the
relationship."
"Yes, it is quite right
of him," said Geraldine, "but she will be a drag on him all his
life. Now what ought we to do? Shall you answer this letter to the care of
the van-man, Clem?"
"I shall think, and
wait till I have seen Gerald and Travis.
This letter is evidently written simply in the hope of raising money
from me, not in any friendly spirit."
"Certainly not,"
said Lance. "Having failed to
black-mail Gerald, and discovered that you are the heir, they begin on you, but
not from any gratitude to you. Sweetie
Bob, as they call the ex-errand-boy, gives a fine account of their
denunciations of the tall parson who brought the bobbies down on them."
Lance felt much reassured by
Clement's tone, and all the more when he had seen Dr. Brownlow, who made a
thorough examination, and came to the conclusion that Clement had recovered
tone, so that the shock, whatever it was, that his brother dreaded had done no
present damage, but that he was by no means fit for any strain of work or
exertion, should be kept from anxiety as much as possible, and had better spend
the winter in a warm climate. It was
not likely-—Jock Brownlow said it with grief and pain-—that he would ever be
able to return to the charge of St. Matthew's, but as he had a year's holiday,
there was no need to enter on that subject yet, and in a quiet country place,
with a curate, he might live to the age of man in tolerable health if he took
care of himself, or his sister took care of him for some time to come.
So much relieved was Lance
that he recollected that he had laid in no stock of presents for those at home,
and went up to profit by the second day's reductions, when he secured
Geraldine's portrait of Davy Blake for his wife, and a statuette of St. Cecilia
for Dr. May, some charming water-colours for Robina and Ethel, besides various
lesser delights for the small fry, his own and the flock at Vale Leston,
besides a cushion for Alda's sofa. John
Inglesant had been bought by a connoisseur by special commission. He heard at every stall triumphant accounts
of the grand outlay of the Travis Underwoods and Rotherwoods, and just the
contrary of Mrs. Pettifer, whom he encountered going about in search of
bargains, and heard haggling for a handsome table-cover, because it was quite
aesthetic, and would not do except in a large house, so of course it had not
sold.
The Mouse-traps had been a
great success, and there were very few left of them. They really owed as much to Lance as did the play, for he had not
only printed them at as small a cost as possible, but had edited, pruned, and
got them into shape more than any of the young lady authors suspected. The interpretation of handwriting had
likewise succeeded in obtaining many clients, and a large pile of silver
coins. Anna, who was hovering near, was
delighted to show him that her sister Sophy's writing had been declared to
indicate homely tastes, an affectionate disposition, great perspicuity of
perception, much force of character; and Franceska's, scarcely yet formed,
showed that she was affectionate, romantic, and, of all things in the world,
fond of horses and of boating. Emilia's
was held as a great blunder, for she was said to have an eye devoted to
temporal advantages, also volatile, yet of great determination, triumphing over
every obstacle, and in much danger of self-deception.
"The triumph at least
is true," said Anna, "now she has her way about the nursing."
"Has she? I did not know it."
"Yes, she is to try it
for a year, while Cousins Fernan and Marilda go out to their farm in the Rocky
Mountains."
Just then there was a little
commotion, and a report came up that a boat had been run down and some one
drowned. Somebody said, "One of
those acting last night-—a buccaneer."
Somebody else, "A naval man."
Then it was "The Buccaneer Captain," and Mrs. Pettifer was
exclaiming, "Poor Captain Armytage!
He was in our theatricals, I remember, but they thought him rather
high. But he was a fine young man! Poor Captain Armytage!"
Lance had sufficient
interests in those at sea to be anxious, and turned his steps to the gates to
ascertain the facts, when he was overtaken by Gillian, with a hat hastily
thrown over her snooded hair and Highland garb, hurrying along, and looking
very white.
"Mr. Underwood! Oh! did you hear who it was?"
"No certainty. I was going down to find out. You," as he saw her purpose, "had
better not come. There will be a great
crowd. I will come back and tell
you."
"Oh no, I must. This is the short way."
Her hands trembled so that
she could hardly undo the private fastening of Miss Mohun's garden, and she
began to dash down the cliff steps.
Just at the turn, where the stair-way was narrowest, Lance heard her
exclaim, and saw that she had met face to face no other than Captain Armytage
himself.
"Oh! is it?" and
she so tottered on the rocky step that the hand he had put out in greeting
became a support, and a tender one, as Lance said (perhaps with a little malice)—-
"We heard that the
Buccaneer Captain had come to grief."
"I?" he laughed;
and Gillian shook herself up, asking—-
"Weren't you run
down?" seeing even as she spoke that not a drop of wet was traceable.
"Me! What! did you think I was going to peril my
life in a 'long-shore concern like this?" said he, with a merry laugh,
betraying infinite pleasure.
"But did nothing
happen? Nobody drowned?" she
asked, half disappointed.
"Not a mouse! A little chap, one of the fairies yesterday,
tumbled off the sea-wall where he had no business to be, but he swam like a
cork. We threw him a rope and hauled
him up."
Wherewith he gave his arm to
Gillian, who was still trembling, and clasped it so warmly that Lance thought
it expedient to pass them as soon as possible and continue his journey on the
staircase, giving a low whistle of amusement, and pausing to look out on the
beautiful blue bay, crowded with the white sails of yachts and pleasure-boats,
with brilliant festoons of little flags, and here and there the feather of
steam from a launch. He could look, for
he was feeling lighter of heart now that the communication was over.
Perhaps Lance would have
been edified could he have heard the colloquy—-
"Gillian! you do care
for me after all?"
Gillian tried to take her
arm away and to say, "Common humanity," but she did not get the words
out.
"No, no!" he
said. "Confess that if it had been
that fisher-boy, you would not be here now!" and he kept tight the arm
that she was going to take away. Her
face was in a flame.
"Well, well; and if-—if
it wasn't, you need not make such a fuss about it."
"Not when it is the
first ray of hope you have afforded me, for the only joy of my life?"
"I never meant to
afford—-"
"But you could not
help."
"Oh, don't! I never meant it. Oh dear! I never meant to
be worried about troublesome things like this till I had got older, and learnt
a great deal more; and now you want to upset it all. It is very—-very disagreeable."
"But you need not be
upset!" poor Ernley Armytage pleaded.
"Remember, I am going away for three years. May I not take hope with me?"
Gillian paused.
"Well," again she
said, "I do like you—-I mean, I don't mind you as much as most people; you
have done something, and you have some sense."
His look of rapture at these
very moderate words quite overpowered her, and the tears welled up into her
eyes, while she made a sudden change of tone.
"There, there-—of
course it is all right. I'm a nasty
creature, and if you like me, it is more than I deserve, only, whatever you do,
don't make me cry. I've got all the
horrid dolls and pen-wipers, and bags and rags to get rid of."
"May I talk to your
mother?"
"Oh yes, if you can
catch her. She will be ever so much
more good to you than I; and I only hope she will warn you what a Tartar I
am."
Wherewith Gillian threw off
her hat, swung open the gate, and dashed like a hunted hare up to her mother's
stall, where in truth she had been wanted, since only two helpers had remained
to assist in the cheapening and final disposal of the remnants. Lady Merrifield read something in those wild
eyes and cheeks burning, but the exigencies of the moment obliged her to hold
her peace, and apply herself to estimating the half-price of the cushions and
table-cloths she rejoiced to see departing, as well as to preserve wits enough
not to let Gillian sell the Indian screen for two shillings and sixpence, under
the impression that this was the half of five pounds. Mysie was the only one who kept her senses fairly undisturbed,
and could balance between her duty to the schools and her desire to gratify a
child, happy in that she never saw more than one thing at a time. Valetta and Primrose were yachting, so that
the distraction was less, and Captain Armytage lingered round, taking messages,
and looking in wistful earnestness for some one to be disengaged. Yet there was something in his eyes that
spoke of the calmness of an attained object, and Miss Mohun, who had sold off
all her remaining frocks and pinafores at a valuation to Marilda for some
institution, and was free to help her sister, saw in a moment that his mind was
settled.
Yet speech was scarcely
possible till the clearance was finally effected by a Dutch auction, when
Captain Armytage distinguished himself unexpectedly as auctioneer, and made an
end even of the last sachet, though it smelt so strongly of lip-salve that he
declared that a bearer must be paid to take it away. But the purchaser was a big sailor, who evidently thought it an
elegant gift for his sweetheart.
By the time it was gone the
yachters had come home. Captain
Armytage seized on Sir Jasper, who already know his purpose, and wished him
success, though withheld from saying a word to urge the suit by Lady
Merrifield's assurances, that to hurry Gillian's decision would be fatal to
success, and that a reproof for petulance would be worse. She did not know whether to wish for the
engagement or not; Gillian was her very dear and sufficient companion, more
completely so than Mysie, who was far less clever; and she had sometimes
doubted whether common domestic life beginning early was for the girl's
happiness and full development; but she knew that her husband would scout these
doubts as nonsense, and both really liked Ernley Armytage, and had heard
nothing but what was to his advantage in every way, when they had been in his
own county, and had seen his neighbours and his family. However, she could only keep quiet, and let
her heart rise in a continual aspiration at every silent moment for her child's
guidance.
Before she had had her
moment of speech with either, she heard her husband calling Gillian, and she
knew that he was the one person with whom his daughter never hid her true self
in petulance or sarcasm. So Gillian met
him in the General's sitting-room, gasping as she turned the handle of the
door. He set a chair for her, and spoke
gravely.
"My dear," he
said, "I find you have gained the heart of a good man."
"I am sure I never meant
it," half whispered Gillian.
"What is that-—you
never meant it? I never supposed you
capable of such an unladylike design.
You mean that you were taken by surprise?"
"No; I did see what he
was at," and she hung her head.
"You guessed his
intentions?"
"Yes, papa; but I
didn't want-—"
"Try to explain
yourself," said Sir Jasper as she broke off.
"I--I did wish to go on
improving myself and being useful.
Surely it was not wrong, papa.
Don't you see, I did not want to let myself be worried into letting
myself go out, and spoiling all my happiness and improvement and work, and
getting to care for somebody else?"
"But you have
consented."
"Well, when I was
frightened for him I found I did care, and he got hold of me, and made me allow
that I did; and now I suppose nobody will give me any peace."
"Stay, Gillian-—keep
yourself from this impatient mood. I
think I understand your unwillingness to overthrow old associations and admit a
new overmastering feeling."
"That's just it,
papa," said Gillian, looking up.
"I can't bear that overmastering feeling, nor the being told every
one must come to it. It seems such
folly."
"Folly that Eve was
given to be a helpmeet, and as the bride, the Church to her Bridegroom? Look high enough, Gillian, and the popular
chatter will not confuse your mind. You
own that you really love him."
"Oh, papa, not half so
much as mamma, or Mysie, or Jasper, but-—but
I think I might."
"Is that all,
Gillian? No one would coerce you. Shall I send him away, and tell him not to
think of it? Remember, it is a serious
thing—-nay, an unworthy thing to trifle with a right-minded man."
Gillian sat clasping the
elbow of her chair, her dark eyes fixed.
At last she said—-
"Papa, I do feel a sort
of trust in him, a sort of feeling as if my life and all goodness and all that
would be safe with him; and I couldn't bear him to go quite away and hear no
more of him, only I do wish it wouldn't happen now; and if there is a fuss
about it, I shall get cross and savage, and be as nasty as possible, I know I
shall."
"You can't exercise
enough self-command to remember what is due-—I would say kind and
considerate-—to a man who has loved you through all your petulance and
discouragement, and now is going to a life not without peril for three years? Suppose a mishap, Gillian-—how would you
feel as to your treatment of him on this last evening?"
"Oh, papa! if you talk
in that way I must, I must," and she burst into tears.
Sir Jasper bent over her and
gave her a kiss-—a kiss that from him was something to remember. It was late, and summonses to a hurried meal
were ringing through Beechcroft Cottage, where the Clipstone party waited to
see the illuminations.
Talk was eager between the
sellers and the sailors as Valetta described the two parties, the fate of the
Indian screen, and the misconduct of Cockneys in their launches were discussed
by many a voice, but Gillian was unwontedly silent. Her mother had no time for more than a kiss before the shouts of Wilfred,
Fergus, and Primrose warned them that the illuminations were beginning. She could only catch Mysie, and beg her to
keep the younger ones away from Gillian and the Captain. Mysie opened her brown eyes wide and said—-
"Oh!" Then, "Is it really?"
"Really, my dear, and
remember that it is his last evening!"
"Oh!" said Mysie
again. "I never thought it of
Gill! May I tell Valetta?"
"Better not, my dear,
if it can be helped."
A screaming for Gill was
heard, and Mysie hastened to answer it.
Lady Merrifield was too much tired to do anything but sit in the garden
with Miss Mohun and look out at the ships, glittering with festoons of coloured
lamps, reflected in the sea, but the young people went further afield, out on
the cliff path to Rotherwood Park. The
populace were mainly collected on the quay, and this formed a more select
promenade, though by no means absolute solitude. Sir Jasper really did keep guard over the path along which
Gillian allowed her Captain to conduct her, not exactly knowing which way they
were going, and quite away from the bay and all its attractions.
She heard him out without
any of the sharp, impatient answers in which her maiden coyness was wont to
disguise itself, as he told her of his hopes and plans for the time when his
three years of the Mediterranean should be over.
"And you see you can go
on studying all the time, if you must be so clever."
"I think one ought to
make the most of oneself, just as you want to rise in your profession! No, indeed, I could not bear you if you
wanted me to sit down and idle, or to dawdle yourself."
"Don't grow too clever
for me."
"Mother always says
that a real man has stuff in him that is quite different from cleverness, and
yet I could not bear to give that up. I
am so glad you don't mind."
"Mind! I mind nothing but to know you are caring
for me. And you will write to me?"
"I shan't know what to
say. You will tell of volcanoes, and
Athens, and Constantinople, and Egypt, and the Holy Land, and I shall have
nothing to say but who lectures in college."
"Little you know what
that will be to me."
It was a curious sensation
all the time to Gillian, with a dawning sense that was hardly yet love—-she was
afraid of that-—but of something good and brave and worthy that had become
hers. She had felt something analogous
when the big deer-hound at Stokesley came and put his head upon her lap. But the hound showed himself grateful for
caresses, and so did her present giant when the road grew rough, and she let
him draw her arm into his and talk to her.
It was the parting, for he
had to go to London and to his own family the next day early. Gillian spoke not a word all through the
dark drive to Clipstone, but when the party emerged into the light her eyes
were full of tears. Lady Merrifield
followed her to her room, and her words half choked were—-
"Mamma, I never knew
what a great, solemn, holy thing it is.
Will you look me out a prayer to help me to get worthy?"
'Twas in the summer-time so
sweet,
When hearts and flowers are both in season,
That who, of all the world should meet,
In "twilight eve," but Love and Reason.
T. MOORE.
That moon and sparkling
lights did not shine alone for Gerald and Dolores. There were multitudes on the cliffs and the beach, and Sir
Ferdinand and Lady Travis Underwood with their party had come to an irregular
sort of dinner-supper at St. Andrew's Rock.
With them, or rather before them, came Mr. Bramshaw, the engineer, who
sent in his card to Mr. Clement Underwood, and entered with a leathern bag,
betraying the designs on Penbeacon.
Not that these were more
than an introduction. Indeed, under the
present circumstances, a definite answer was impossible; but there was another
question, namely, that which regarded Sophia Vanderkist. She had indeed long been of age, but of
course her suitor could not but look to her former guardian for consent and
influence. He was a very bearded man,
pleasant-spoken and gentlemanlike, and Lancelot had prepared his brother by
saying that he knew all about the family, and they were highly respectable
solicitors at Minsterham, one son a master in the school at Stoneborough. So Clement listened favourably, liked the
young man, and though his fortunes at present depended on his work, and Lady
Vanderkist was no friend to his suit, gave him fair encouragement, and invited
him to join the meal, though the party was already likely to be too numerous
for the dining-room.
That mattered the less when
all the young and noisy ones could be placed, to their great delight, under the
verandah outside, where they could talk and laugh to their utmost content,
without incommoding Uncle Clement, or being awed by Cousin Fernan's black beard
and Cacique-like gravity. How they
discussed and made fun over the humours of the bazaar; nor was Gerald's wit the
slackest, nor his mirth the most lagging.
He was very far from depressed now that the first shock was over. He knew himself to be as much loved or
better than ever by those whose affection he valued, and he was sure of
Dolores' heart as he had never yet been.
The latent Bohemianism in his nature woke with the prospect of having
his own way to make, and being free from the responsibilities of an estate, and
his chivalry was excited by the pleasure of protecting his little half-sister,
in pursuit of whom he intended to go.
So, light-hearted enough to
amaze the elders who knew the secret, he jumped up to go with the rest of the
party to the cliff walk, where the brilliant ships could best be seen. Lance, though his headache was, as Geraldine
said, visible on his brow, declared that night air and sea-breeze were the best
remedy, and went in charge of the two boys, lest his dainty Ariel should make
an excursion over the rocks; and the four young ladies were escorted by Gerald
and the engineer.
The elders were much too
tired for further adventures, and Geraldine and Marilda were too intimate to
feel bound to talk. Only a few words
dropped now and then about Emilia and her hospital, where she was to be left
for a year, while Fernan with Marilda visited his American establishments, and
on their return would decide whether she would return, or whether they would
take Franceska, or a younger one, in her stead. The desertion put Marilda out of heart, and she sighed what a
pity it was that the girl would not listen to young Brown.
Meanwhile, Clement was
making Ferdinand go over with him Edgar's words about his marriage. They had all been written down immediately
after his death, and had been given to Felix with the certificates of the
marriage and birth and of the divorce, and they were now no doubt with other
documents and deeds in the strong-box at Vale Leston Priory. Fernan could only repeat the words which had
been burnt in on his memory, and promise to hunt up the evidence of the form
and manner of the dissolution of the marriage at Chicago. Like Clement himself, he very much doubted
whether the allegation would not break down in some important point, but he
wished Gerald to be assured that if the worst came to the worst, he would never
be left destitute, since that first meeting—-the baptism, and the receiving him
from the dying father-—amounted to an adoption sacred in his eyes.
Then, seeing how worn-out
Clement looked, he abetted Sibby and Geraldine, in shutting their patient safe
up in his bedroom, not to be "mislested" any more that night, said
Sibby. So he missed the rush of the
return. First came the two sober sisters,
Anna and Emilia, only sorry that Aunt Cherry had not seen the lovely sea, the
exquisite twinkle of silvered waves as the moon rose, and then the outburst of
coloured lights, taking many forms, and the brilliant fireworks darting to and
fro, describing curves, bursting and scattering their sparks. Emilia had, however, begun by the anxious
question—-
"Nan, what is it with
Gerald?"
"I don't quite
know. I suspect Dolores has somehow
teased him, though it is not like her."
"Then there is
something in it?"
"I can't help believing
so, but I don't believe it has come to anything."
"And is she not a most
disagreeable girl! Those black eyebrows
do look so sullen and thunderous."
"Oh no, Emmie, I
thought so at first, but she can't help her eyebrows; and when you come to know
her there is a vast deal in her-—thought, and originality, and purpose. I am sure it has been good for Gerald. He has seemed more definite and in earnest
lately, less as if he were playing with everything, with all views all
round."
"But his spirits are so
odd!-—so merry and then so grave."
"That is only during
these last few days, and I fancy there must be some hitch—-perhaps about
Dolores' father, and we are all in such haste."
Emilia did not pursue the
subject. She had never indulged in the
folly of expecting any signs of actual love from her cousin. She had always known that the family
regarded any closer bond as impossible; but she had been always used to be his
chief confidante, and she missed his attention, but she would not own this even
to herself, go she talked of her hospital schemes with much zest, and how she
should spend her outings at a favourite sisterhood.
"For," said she,
"I am tired of luxury."
It had been a delightful
walk to Anna, with her companion sister, discussing Adrian, or Emily's plans,
or Sophy's prospects. They had come
home the sooner, for Emily had to pack, as she was to spend a little while with
her mother at Vale Leston. Where was
Franceska? They were somewhat dismayed
not to find her, but it was one of the nights when everybody loses everybody,
and no doubt she was with Uncle Lance, or with Sophy, or Gerald.
No such thing. Here was Uncle Lance with his two boys in
varying kinds of delight, Adrian pronouncing that "it was very jolly, the
most ripping sight he ever saw," then eating voraciously, with his eyes half
shut, and tumbling off to bed "like a veritable Dutchman," said
Lance, who had his own son in a very different mood, with glowing cheeks,
sparkling eyes, appetite gone for very excitement, as he sprang about and waved
his hands to describe the beautiful course of the rockets, and the fall of the
stars from the Roman candles.
"Oh, such as I
never-—never saw! How shall I get Pearl
and Audrey to get even a notion of it?
Grandpapa will guess in a moment!
Oh, and the sea, all shine with a path of—-of glory! Oh, daddy, there are things more beautiful
than anybody could ever dream of!"
"Go and dream then, my
sprite. Try to be as still as you can,
even if you do go on feeling the yacht, and seeing the sparks when you shut
your eyes. For you see my head is bad,
and I do want a chance of sleep."
"Poor daddy! I'll try, even if the music goes on in my
head. Good-night."
"That will keep him
quieter than anything," said Lance; "but I would not give much for
the chance of his not seeing the dawn."
"Or you either, I
fear," said Geraldine. "Have
you slept since the discovery?"
"I shall make my sleep
up at home, now I have had the whole out.
Who comes now?"
It was Sophy, with her look
of
"Gentle wishes long subdued,
Subdued and cherished long."
Mr. Bramshaw had brought her
to the door, and no doubt she and he had had a quiet, restful time of patient
planning; but the not finding Francie soon filled her with great alarm and
self-reproach for having let herself be drawn away from the party, when all had
stood together on Miss Mohun's lawn.
She wanted to start off at once in search of her sister, and was hardly
pacified by finding that Gerald was still to come. Then, however, Gerald did come, and alone. He said he had just seen the Clipstone party
off. No, he had not seen Francie there;
but he added, rather as if recovering from a bewilderment, as Sophy was asking
him to come out with her again, "Oh, never fear. Lord Ivinghoe was there somewhere!"
"I thought he was
gone."
"No, he said the yacht
got in too late for the train. Never
mind, Sophy, depend upon it she is all right."
None of the ladies present
felt equally pleased, but in a minute or two more in came a creature, bright,
lovely, and flushed, with two starry eyes, gleaming like the blue lights on the
ships.
"Oh, Cousin Marilda,
have I kept you waiting? I am so
sorry!"
"Where have you
been?"
"Only on the cliff
walk. Lord Ivinghoe took me to see the
place where his father had the accident, and we watched the fireworks from
there. Oh, it was so nice, and still
more beautiful when the strange lights were out and the people gone, and only
the lovely quiet moon shining on the sea, and a path of light from Venus."
"I should think
so," muttered Gerald, and Marilda began—-
"Pretty well,
miss."
"I am very sorry to bo
so late," began Francie, and Geraldine caught an opportunity while
shawling Marilda to say—-
"Dear, good Marilda, I
implore you to say nothing to put it into her head or Alda's. I don't think any harm is done yet, but it
can't be anything. It can't come to
good, and it would only be unhappiness to them all."
"Oh, ah! well, I'll
try. But what a chance it would be, and
how happy it would make poor Alda!"
"It can't be. The boy's mother would never let him look at
her! Don't, don't, don't!"
"Well, I'll try
not." She kissed her fondly.
Gerald's walk had been with
Dolores of course, a quiet, grave, earnest talk and walk, making them feel how
much they belonged to one another, and building schemes in which they were to
learn the nature of the poor and hard-worked, by veritably belonging to them,
and being thus able to be of real benefit.
In truth, neither of them, in their brave youthfulness, really regretted
Vale Leston, and the responsibilities; and, as Gerald declared, he would give
it up tomorrow gladly if he could save his name and his father's from shame,
but, alas! the things went together.
Dolores wished to write
fully to her father, and that Gerald should do the same, but she did not wish
to have the matter discussed in the family at once, before his answer came, and
Gerald had agreed to silence, as indeed they would not call themselves engaged
till that time. Indeed, Dolores said
there was so much excitement about Captain Armytage that no one was thinking of
her.
He either fears his fate too
much,
Or his deserts are small,
Who fears to put it to the
touch,
To win or lose it all.
If Sibby hoped to keep her
"long boy" from being "mislested," she was mistaken. He knew too well what was to come, and when
she knocked at his door with his cup of tea, he came to it half dressed, to her
extreme indignation, calling for his shaving water.
"Now, Master Clem, if
you would only be insinsed enough to keep to your bed, you might have Miss
Sophy to speak to you there, if nothing else will serve you."
"Is she there?"
"In coorse, and Miss
Francie too. What should they do else,
after colloguing with their young men all night? Ah, 'tis a proud woman poor Miss Alda would be if she could have
seen the young lord! And the real
beauty is Miss Francie, such as my own babbies were before her, bless
them!"
"Stop," cried
Clement in consternation. "It is
only a bit of passing admiration. Don't
say a word about it to the others."
"As if I would demane
myself to the like of them! Me that has
been forty-seven years with you and yours, and had every one of you in my arms
the first thing, except the blessed eldest that is gone to a better
place."
"Would that he were
here now!" sighed Clement, almost as he had sighed that first morning of
his loss. "Where are those
girls?"
"Rampaging over the
house with Sir Adrian, and his packing of all his rubbish, enough to break the
heart of a coal-heaver! I'd not let
them in to bother their aunt, and Mr. Gerald is asleep like a blessed
baby."
"And Lance?"
"Oh! it is down to the
sea he is with that child that looks as if he was made of air, and lived on
live larks! And Master Lance, he's no
better-—eats like a sparrow, and sits up half the night writing for his
paper."
Clement got rid of Sibby at
last, but he was hardly out of his room before Sophy descended on him, anxious
and blushing, though he could give her much sympathy and kindly hope of his
influence, only he had to preach patience.
It had been no hasty fancy, but there had long been growing esteem and
affection, and he could assure her of all the aid the family could give with
her mother, though Penbeacon works would be a very insecure foundation for
hope.
"I think Gerald would
consent," said Sophy, "and he will soon be of age."
Clement could only say
"Humph!"
"One thing I hope is
not wrong," said Sophy, "but I do trust that no one will tell mother
about Lord Ivinghoe. It is not
jealousy, I hope, but I cannot see that there is anything in it, only the very
sound would set mother more against Philip than ever."
"You do not suppose
that Francie is—-is touched?"
"No," said Sophy,
gravely as an elder, "she is such a child. She was very much pleased and entertained, and went on
chattering, till I begged her to let us say our prayers in peace. We never talk after that, and she went to
sleep directly, and was smiling when she woke, but I do not fancy she will
dwell on it, or fancy there is more to come, unless some one puts it into her
head."
It was sagely said, and
Clement knew pretty well who was the one person from whom Sophy had fears. Poor Alda, improved and altered as she was,
if such a hope occurred to her, would she be able to help imparting it to her daughter
and looking out for the fulfilment?
Loud calls for Sophy rang
through the house, and Clement had only time to add—-
"Patience, dear child,
and submission. They not only win the
day, but are the best preparation for it when it is won."
That family of girls had
grown up to be a care to one who had trusted that his calling would be a shield
from worldly concerns; but he accepted it as providential, and as a trust
imposed on him as certainly as Felix had felt the headship of the orphaned
house.
He was rejoiced to find on
coming down-stairs that Lance had decided on giving another day to family
counsels, sending off little Felix with his cousins, who would drop him at the
junction to Stoneborough, whence he would be proud to travel alone. Clement took another resolution, in virtue
of which he knocked at his sister's door before she went down.
"Cherry," said he,
"would it be inconvenient to keep Francie here just for the present?"
"Not at all; it would
be only too pleasant for Anna now that she loses her brother. But why?"
"I want to hinder her
from hearing the conclusions that her mother may draw from the diversions of
yesterday."
"I see. It might soon be,
'He cometh not, she said.'"
"And Sophy will keep
her counsel as to those moonlight wanderings.
When were they to go?"
"By the 11.30
train. Marilda is coming up
first."
So the plan was
propounded. Franceska was only too much
charmed to stay in what had indeed been an enchanted coast to her, and Sophy
was sure that mamma would not mind; so the matter was settled, and the
explanatory notes written.
The party set off, with each
little boy hugging a ship in full sail, and the two young sisters were disposed
of by a walk to Clipstone to talk over their adventures. Mrs. Grinstead felt certain of the good
manners and reticence prevailing there to prevent any banter about Lord
Ivinghoe, and she secured the matter further by a hint to Anna.
However, Miss Mohun was
announced almost as they left the house.
She too was full of the bazaar, which seemed so long ago to her hearers,
but with the result of which she was exceedingly delighted. The voluntary schools were secured for the
present, and the gratitude of the Church folk was unbounded, especially to the
Vale Leston family, who had contributed so greatly to the success of the whole.
Jane too had watched the
evening manoeuvres, and perceived, with her sharp eyes, all that was avowed and
not avowed under that rising moon. The
pair of whom she had first to speak were "Ivanhoe and Rowena," as she
called them, and she was glad to find that the "fair Saxon" had grown
up at Vale Leston, educated by her aunt and sister, and imbibing no outside
habits or impressions.
"Poor child," said
Jane, "she looks like a flower; one is sorry it should be meddled
with."
"So did my sister Stella,
and there, contrary to all our fears, the course of true love did run
smooth."
"If it depended
entirely on Rotherwood himself, I think it would," said Jane,
"but-—" She paused and went
on, "Ivinghoe is, I fear, really volage, and he is the mark of a good many
London mammas."
"Is it true about Mrs.
Henderson's sister?"
"There's nothing in
it. I believe he danced with her a few
times, and the silly little thing put her own construction on it, but her
sister made her confess that he had never said a word to her, nor made love in
any sense. Indeed, my sister Adeline
would never have consented to her coming here if she had believed in it, but
Maura has a Greek nature and turns the Whites round her fingers. Well, I hope all will go well with your
pretty Franceska. I should not like her
lovely bloom to be faded by Ivinghoe.
He is Rotherwood's own boy, though rather a prig, and a man in
London. Oh, you know what that
means!"
"We have done notre
possible to keep our interpretation from the poor child, or any hint of it
from reaching her mother."
"That's right. Poor Rowena, I hope the spark will be blown
out, or remain only a pleasant recollection.
As to little Maura, she had her lesson when she was reduced to hanging
on Captain Henderson's other arm! She
is off to-day to meet Mr. White in London.
That purpose has been served."
"And have you not a
nearer interest?"
"Oh, Gillian! Well, Captain Armytage did get hold of her,
in what we must now call the Lover's Walk!
Yes, she has yielded, to her father's great satisfaction and perhaps to
her mother's, for she will be more comfortable in looking forward to a
commonplace life for her than in the dread of modern aberrations. But Gillian is very funny, very much ashamed
of having given in, and perfectly determined to go to her college and finish
her education, which she may as well do while the Sparrow Hawk is at sea. He is off to-day, and she says she is very
glad to be rid of him. She sat down at
once to her dynamite, as Primrose calls it, having bound over Mysie and Valetta
never to mention the subject! I tell
them that to obey in silence is the way to serve the poor man best."
Miss Mohun was interrupted
by the announcement of Lady Flight and Mr. Flight, who came equally eager with
delight and gratitude to thank the House of Underwood for the triumph. The rest of the clergy of Rockquay and half
the ladies might be expected, and in despair at last of a "lucid
interval," Geraldine ordered the carriage for a long drive into the
country, so as to escape all visitors.
Even then, they could not got up the hill without being stopped four or
five times to receive the thanks and compliments which nearly drove Gerald
crazy, so much did he want to hear what his family had to say to his plans,
that he had actually consented to partake of a dowager-drive in a landau!
He and his uncle had
discovered from the police in the course of the morning that Ludmilla and her
mother had not gone with the circus, but had been seen embarking in the Alice
Jane, a vessel bound for London. His
idea had been to hurry thither and endeavour to search out his half-sister, and
rescue her; but Lance had assured him not only that it would probably be a vain
quest, but that there would be full time to meet the Alice Jane by land before
she could get there by sea.
To this he had yielded, but
not so readily to the representation that the wisest way would be to keep out
of sight; but to let Lance, as a less interested party, go and interview the
van proprietor, whose direction had been sent to Clement, try to see O'Leary,
and do his best to bargain for Ludmilla's release, a matter on which all were
decided, whatever might be the upshot of the question respecting Gerald. To leave a poor girl to circus training,
even if there were no interest in her, would have been shocking to right-minded
people; but when it was such a circus as O'Leary's, and the maiden was so good,
sweet, and modest as Lida, the thought would have been intolerable even without
the connection with Gerald, who had been much taken with all he had seen of
her.
"That is fixed, even if
we have to bid high for our Mona," said Lance.
"By all means,"
said Geraldine. "It will be
another question what will be good for her when we have got her."
"I will take care of
that!" said Gerald.
"Next," Lance went
on, "we must see what proofs, or if there be any, of this person's
story. I expect one of you will have to
pay well for them, but I had better take a lawyer with me."
Clement named the solicitor
who had the charge of the Vanderkist affairs.
"Better than Staples,
or Bramshaw & Anderson. Yes, it
would be best to have no previous knowledge of the family, and no neighbourly
acquaintance. Moreover, I am not exactly
an interested party, so I may be better attended to."
"Still I very much
doubt, even if you do get any statement from the woman, whether it can be
depended upon without verification," said Clement.
"From the registers, if
there are any at these places?"
"Exactly, and there
must be personal inquiry. The first
husband, Gian Benista, will have to be hunted down, dead or alive."
"Yes; and another
thing," said Lance, "if the Italian marriage were before the
revolution in Sicily, I expect the ecclesiastical ceremony would be valid, but
after that, the civil marriage would be required."
"Oh!" groaned
Gerald, "if you would let me throw it all up without these wretched
quibbles."
"Not your father's
honour," said his aunt.
"Nor our honesty,"
said Clement. "It is galling
enough to have your whole position in life depend on the word of a worthless
woman, but there are things that must be taken patiently, as the will of One
who knows."
"It is so hard to
accept it as God's will when it comes of human sin," said Geraldine.
"Human
thoughtlessness," said Clement; "but as long as it is not by our own
fault we can take it as providential, and above all, guard against impatience,
the real ruin and destruction."
"Yes," said Lance,
"sit on a horse's head when he is down to keep him from kicking."
"So you all are sitting
on my head," said Gerald; "I shall get out and walk-—a good rush on
the moors."
"Wait at least to allow
your head to take in my scheme," said Clement.
"Provided it is not
sitting still," said Gerald.
"Far from it. Only it partly depends on my lady and
mistress here-—"
"I guess," said
Geraldine. "You know I am disposed
that way by Dr. Brownlow's verdict."
"And 'that way' is that
we go ourselves to try to trace out this strange allegation—-you coming too,
Gerald, so that we shall not quite be sitting on your head."
"But my sister?"
"We will see when we
have recovered her," said Mrs. Grinstead.
"I would begin with a
visit to Stella and her husband," said Clement; "Charlie could put us
in the way of dealing with consuls and vice-consuls."
"Excellent," cried
his sister; "Anna goes of course, and I should like to take Francie. It would be such an education for her."
"Well, why not?"
"And what is to become
of Adrian?"
"Well, we should not
have been here more than six months of course."
"I could take
him," said Lance, "unless Alda holds poor old Froggatt &
Underwood beneath his dignity."
"That can be
considered," said Clement; "it approves itself best to me, except
that he is getting on so well here that I don't like to disturb him."
"And when can you come
up to town with me?" demanded Gerald; "tomorrow?"
"To-morrow being
Saturday, it would be of little use to go.
No, if you will not kick, master, I must go home to-morrow, and look up
poor 'Pur,' also the organ on Sunday.
Come with me, and renew your acquaintance. We will make an appointment with your attorney, Clem, and run up
on Monday evening, see him on Tuesday."
Gerald sighed, submitting
perforce, and they let him out to exhale as much impatience as he could in a
tramp over the hills, while they sat and pitied him from their very
hearts.
'Perish wealth and power and
pride,
Mortal boons by mortals given;
But let constancy abide—-
Constancy's the gift of Heaven.-—SCOTT.
Lancelot and Gerald did not
obtain much by their journey to London.
Gerald wanted to begin with Mr. Bast, van proprietor, but Lance insisted
on having the lawyer's counsel first, and the advice amounted to exhortations
not to commit themselves, or to make offers such as to excite cupidity,
especially in the matter of Ludmilla, but to dwell on the fact of her being so
close to the age of emancipation, and the illegality of tyrannical training.
This, however, proved to be
wasted advice. Mr. Bast was
impervious. He undertook to forward a
letter to Mr. O'Leary, but would not tell where, nor whether wife and daughter
were with him. The letter was written,
and in due time was answered, but with an intimation that the information
desired could only be given upon the terms already mentioned; and refusing all
transactions respecting the young lady mentioned, who was with her natural
guardians and in no need of intervention.
They were baffled at all
points, and the lawyer did not encourage any idea of holding out a lure for
information, which might easily be trumped up.
Since Lancelot had discovered so much as that the first marriage had
taken place at Messina, and the desertion at Trieste, as well as that the
husband was said to have been a native of Piedmont, he much recommended
personal investigation at all these points, especially as Mr. Underwood could
obtain the assistance and interest of consuls.
It was likely that if neither uncle nor nephew made further
demonstration, the O'Learys would attempt further communication, which he and
Lance could follow up. This might be a
clue to finding "the young lady"—-to him a secondary matter, to
Gerald a vital one, but for the present nothing could be done for her, poor
child.
So they could only return to
Rockquay to make immediate preparations for the journey. Matters were simplified by Miss Mohun, who,
hearing that Clement's doctors ordered him abroad for the winter, came to the
rescue, saying that she should miss Fergus and his lessons greatly, and she
thought it would be a pity for Mrs. Edgar to lose their little baronet, just
after having given offence to certain inhabitants by a modified expulsion of
Campbell and Horner, and therefore volunteering to take Adrian for a few terms,
look after his health, his morals, and his lessons, and treat him in fact like
a nephew, "to keep her hand in," she said, "till the infants
began to appear from India."
This was gratefully
accepted, and Alda liked the plan better than placing him at Bexley, which she
continued to regard as an unwholesome place.
The proposal to take Franceska was likewise welcome, and the damsel
herself was in transports of delight.
Various arrangements had to be made, and it was far on in August that
the farewells were exchanged with Clipstone and Beechcroft Cottage, where each
member of the party felt that a real friend had been acquired. The elders, ladies who had grown up in an
enthusiastic age, were even more devoted to one another than were Anna and
Mysie. Gillian stood a little aloof,
resolved against "foolish" confidences, and devoting herself to
studies for college life, in which she tried to swallow up all the feelings
excited by those ship letters.
Dolores had her secret,
which was to be no longer a secret when she had heard from her father, and in
the meantime, with Gerald's full concurrence, she was about to work hard to
qualify herself for lecturing or giving lessons on physical science. She could not enter the college that she
wished for till the winter term, and meant to spend the autumn in severe study.
"We will work,"
was the substance of those last words between them, and their parting tokens
were characteristic, each giving the other a little case of mathematical
instruments, "We will work, and we will hope."
"And what for?"
said Dolores.
"I should say for toil,
if it could be with untarnished name," said Gerald.
"Name and fame are our
own to make," said Dolores, with sparkling eyes.
This was their parting. Indeed they expected to meet at Christmas or
before it, so soon as Mr. Maurice Mohun should have written. Gerald was, by the unanimous wish of his
uncles, to finish his terms at Oxford.
Whatever might be his fate, a degree would help him in life.
He had accepted the
decision, though he had rather have employed the time in a restless search for
his mother and sister; but after vainly pursuing two or three entertainments at
fairs, he became amenable to the conviction that they were more likely to hear
something if they gave up the search and kept quiet, and both Dolores and Mrs.
Henderson promised to be on the watch.
The state of suspense proved
an admirable tonic to the whole being of the young man. His listlessness had departed, and he did
everything with an energy he had never shown before. Only nothing would induce him to go near Vale Leston, and he made
it understood that his twenty-first birthday was to be unnoticed. Not a word passed between Gerald and his
aunt as to the cause of the journey, and the doubt that hung over him, but
nothing could be more assiduous and tender than his whole conduct to her and
his uncle throughout the journey, as though he had no object in life but to
save them trouble and make them comfortable.
The party started in August,
travelled very slowly, and he was the kindest squire to the two girls, taking
them to see everything, and being altogether, as Geraldine said, the most
admirable courier in the world, with a wonderful intuition as to what she
individually would like to see, and how she could see it without fatigue. Moreover, on the Sunday that occurred at a
little German town, it was the greatest joy to her that he sought no outside
gaiety, but rather seemed to cling to his uncle's home ministrations, and even
to her readings of hymns. They had a
quiet walk together, and it was a day of peace when his gentle kindness put her
in mind of his father, yet with a regretful depth she had always missed in
Edgar.
Nor was there any of that
old dreary, half-contemptuous tone and manner which had often made her think he
was only conforming to please her, and shrinking from coming to close quarters,
where he might confess opinions that would grieve her. He was manifestly in earnest, listening and
joining in the services as if they had a new force to him. Perhaps they had the more from the very
absence of the ordinary externals, and with nothing to disturb the individual
personality of Clement's low, earnest, and reverent tones. There were tears on his eyelashes as he rose
up, bent over, and kissed his Cherie.
And that evening, while Clement and the two nieces walked farther, and
listened to the Benediction in the little Austrian church, Gerald sat under a
linden-tree with his aunt, and in the fullness of his heart told her how things
stood between him and Dolores.
Geraldine had never been as
much attracted by Dolores as by Gillian and Mysie, but she was greatly touched
by hearing that the meeting and opening of affection had been on the discovery
that Gerald was probably nameless and landless, and that the maiden was bent on
casting in her lot with him whatever his fate might be.
He murmured to himself the
old lines, with a slight alteration—-
"I could not love thee, dear, so much,
Loved I not justice more."
"Yes, indeed, Cherie,
our affection is a very different and better thing than it would be if I were
only the rich young squire sure of my position."
"I am sure it is, my
dear. I honour and love her for being
my boy's brave comforter—-comforter in the true sense. I see now what has helped you to be so brave
and cheery. But what will her father
say?"
"He will probably be
startled, and—-and will object, but it would be a matter of waiting anyway, the
patience that the Vicar preaches, and we have made up our minds. I'll fight my own way; she to prepare by her
Cambridge course to come and work with me, as we can do so much better among
the people—-among them in reality, and by no pretence."
"Ah! don't speak as if
you gave up your cause."
"Well, I won't, if you
don't like to hear it, Cherie," he said, smiling; "but anyway you
will be good to Dolores."
"Indeed I will do my
best, my dear. I am sure you and she,
whatever happens, have the earnest purpose and soul to do all the good you can,
whether from above or on the same level, and that makes the oneness of
love."
"Thank you, Cherie
carissima. You see the secret of our
true bond."
"One bond to make it
deeper must be there. The love of God
beneath the love of man."
Then the traveller in the
dark
Thanks you for your tiny
spark;
He would not know which way
to go
If you did not twinkle
so.-—JANE TAYLOR.
And so they came to Buda,
where Charles Audley represented English diplomatic interests on the banks of
the Danube. When the quaint old
semi-oriental-looking city came in sight and the train stopped, the neat English-looking
carriage, with gay Hungarian postillions, could be seen drawn up to meet them
outside the station.
Charles and his father, now
Sir Robert, were receiving them with outstretched hands and joyous words, and
in a few seconds more they were with their little Stella! Yes, their little Stella still, as Clement
and Cherry had time to see, when Gerald and the two girls had insisted on
walking, however far it might be, with the two Audleys, though Charlie told
them that no one ever walked in Hungary who could help it, and that he should
be stared at for bringing such strange animals.
Geraldine had stayed with
Stella once before, and Clement had made one hurried and distressful rush in
the trouble about Angela; but that was at Munich, and nearly nine years ago,
before the many changes and chances of life had come to them. To Stella those years had brought two little
boys, whose appearance in the world had been delayed till the Audley family had
begun to get anxious for an heir, but while the Underwoods thought it was well
that their parents, especially their father, should have time to grow a little
older.
And Stella looked as
daintily, delicately pretty as ever, at first sight like a china shepherdess to
be put under a glass shade, but on a second view, with a thoughtful sweetness
and depth in her face that made her not merely pretty but lovely. How happy she was, gazing at her brother and
sister, and now and then putting a question to bring out the overflow of home
news, so dear to her. For she was still
their silent star, making very few words evince her intense interest and
sympathy.
Even when they were at home,
in the house that looked outside like a castle in a romance, but which was so
truly English within, and the two little fellows of four and three came toddling
to meet her, shrinking into her skirts at sight of the new uncle and aunt,
there was a quiet gentle firmness—-all the old Stella-—in her dealings with
them, as she drew them to kiss and greet the strangers. Robbie and Theodore were sturdy, rosy beings,
full of life, but perfectly amenable to that sweet low voice. Their father and grandfather might romp with
them to screaming pitch, and idolize them almost to spoiling, yet they too were
under that gentle check which the young wife exercised on all around.
She was only thirty-one, and
so small, so fair and young in looks, that to her elder sister her pretty
matronly rule would at first seem like the management of a dolls' house,
even though her servants, English, German, or Magyar, obeyed her implicitly;
and for that matter, as Charlie and Sir Robert freely and merrily avowed, so
did they. The young secretary was her
bounden slave, and held her as the ideal woman, though there came to be a
little swerving of his allegiance towards the tall and beautiful Franceska, who
had insensibly improved greatly in grace and readiness on her travels, and
quite dazzled the Hungarians; while Anna was immensely exultant, and used to
come to her aunt's room every night to talk of her lovely Francie as a
safety-valve from discussing the matter with Francie herself, who remained
perfectly simple and unconscious of her own charms. Geraldine could not think them quite equal to the more exquisite
and delicately-finished, as well as more matured, beauty of little Stella, but
that was a matter of taste.
The household was more
English than Hungarian, or even German, and there were curious similitudes to
the Vale Leston Priory arrangements, which kept Stella's Underwood heart in
mind. There had to be receptions, and
it was plain that when she put Fernan's diamonds on, Mrs. Audley was quite at
home and at perfect ease in German and Hungarian society, speaking the
languages without hesitation when she did speak, while in her quiet way
keeping every one entertained, showing the art de tenir un salon, and moreover,
preserving Francie from obtrusive admiration in a way perhaps learnt by
experience on that more perilous subject, Angela, who had invited what Francie
shrank from. The two girls were
supremely happy, and Francie seemed to have a fountain of joy that diffused a
rose-coloured spray over everything.
One of the famous concerts
of Hungarian gipsies was given, and in that Clement and Geraldine were alike
startled by tones recalling those of the memorable concert at Bexley, all the
more because they seemed to have a curious fascination for Gerald. Moreover, those peculiar eyes and eyelashes,
the first link observed between him and the Little Butterfly, were so often
repeated in the gipsy band that it was plain whence they were derived. Charles Audley thought it worth while to
find means of inquiry among the gipsies as to whether anything was known of
Zoraya Prebel or her brother Sebastian; but after some delay and various
excitements nothing was discovered, but that there had been a family, who were
esteemed recreants to their race, and had sold their children to the managers
of German or Italian bands of musicians.
One brother had come back a broken man, who had learnt vices and ruined
himself, though he talked largely of his wonderful success in company with his
sister, who had made grand marriages.
What had become of her he did not know; and when Gerald went with Mr.
Audley to a little mountain valley to visit him, he had been dead for a week or
more.
All this had made some
delay, and it was almost the end of the long vacation. Charles Audley undertook to go to Trieste
with the travellers, and make inquiries about Zoraya and her first
husband. Sir Robert, the Skipper, as
the family still termed him, had written for his yacht to meet him there, and
be ready for him to convey the party to Sicily. He professed that he could not lose sight of Franceska, with whom
he declared himself nearly as much smitten as ever he had been with his
daughter-in-law.
They left that pretty
creature in her happy home, and arrived at Trieste, where Charles Audley set
various agencies to work, and arrived at a remembrance of Giovanni Benista, an
impresario, having been in a state of great fury at his wife, his most able
performer, having fled from him just as he had been at the expense of training
and making her valuable. He tried to
have her pursued, but there was reason to think that she had been smuggled away
in an English or American ship, and nothing could be done.
Thus much of the story then
was confirmed, and Gerald had little or no doubt of the rest of it, but he was
obliged to leave the pursuit of the quest to his uncle and aunt, being somewhat
consoled for having to return to England by the expectation of hearing from Mr.
Maurice Mohun.
Twice he returned for his
aunt's last kiss, nay, even a third time, and then with the half-choked words,
"My true, my dearest mother!"
And he absolutely bent his
knee as he asked for his uncle Clement's blessing.
And deemed themselves a
shameful part
Of pageant which they cursed
in heart.—-SCOTT.
Dolores was waiting till the
Christmas term to go to her college.
The fame of her volcanic lectures had reached Avoncester, and she was
entreated to repeat them at the High School there. The Mouse-trap had naturally been sent to Miss Vincent, the
former governess, who had become head-mistress of the High School at Silverton,
and she wrote an urgent request that her pupils might have the advantage of the
lectures. Would Dolores come and give
her course there, and stay a few days with her, reviving old times?
Dolores consented, being
always glad of an opportunity of trying her wings, though she had not the
pleasantest recollections connected with Silverton, but she would be really
glad to see Miss Vincent, who had been always kind to her. So she travelled up to Silverton, and found
the head-mistress living in cheerful rooms, with another of the teachers in the
same house, all boarding together, but with separate sitting-rooms.
Dolores' first walk was to
see Miss Hackett. It was quite
startling to find the good old lady looking exactly the same as when she had
come to luncheon at Silverfold, and arranged for G. F. S., and weakly stood up for
her sister nine years previously, those years which seemed ages long ago to the
maiden who had made the round of the world since, while the lady had only lived
in her Casement Cottage, and done almost the same things day by day.
There was one exception,
however, Constance had married a union doctor in the neighbourhood. She came into Silverton to see her old
acquaintance, and looked older and more commonplace than Dolores could have
thought possible, and her talk was no longer of books and romances, but of
smoking chimneys, cross landlords, and troublesome cooks, and the wicked
neglects of her vicar's and her squire's wife.
As Dolores walked back to Silverton, she heard drums and trumpets, and
was nearly swept away by a rushing stream of little boys and girls. Then came before her an elephant, with
ornamental housing and howdah, and a train of cars, meant to be very fine, but
way-worn and battered, with white and piebald steeds, and gaudy tinselly
drivers, and dames in scarlet and blue, much needing a washing, distributing
coloured sheets about the grand performance to take place that night at eight
o'clock, of the Sepoy's Death Song and the Bleeding Bride.
Miss Vincent had asked Miss
Hackett to supper, and prepared herself and her fellow-teacher, Miss Calton,
for a pleasant evening of talk, but to her great surprise, Dolores expressed
her intention of going to the performance at the circus.
"My dear," said
Miss Vincent, "this is a very low affair-—not Sanger's, nor anything so
respectable. They have been here
before, and the lodging-house people went and were quite shocked."
"Yes," said
Dolores, "but that is all the more reason I want to go. There is a girl with them in whom we are
very much interested. She was kidnapped
from Rockquay at the time this circus was there. At least I am almost sure it is the same, and I must see if she
is there."
"But if she is you
cannot do anything."
"Yes, I can; I can let
her brother know. It must be done, Miss
Vincent. I have promised, and it is of
fearful consequence."
"Should you know her?"
"Oh yes. I have often talked to her in Mrs.
Henderson's class.
I could not mistake
her."
Miss Hackett was so much
horrified at the notion of a G. F. S. "business girl" being in
bondage to a circus, that she gallantly volunteered to go with Miss Mohun, and
Miss Vincent could only consent.
The place of the circus was
an open piece of ground lying between Silverton and Silverfold, and thither
they betook themselves-—Miss Hackett in an old bonnet and waterproof that might
have belonged to any woman, and Dolores wearing a certain crimson ulster, which
she had bought in Auckland for her homeward voyage, and which her cousins had
chosen to dub as "the Maori."
After a good deal of jostling and much scent of beer and bad tobacco
they achieved an entrance, and sat upon a hard bench, half stifled with the
odours, to which were added those of human and equine nature and of
paraffin. As to the performance,
Dolores was too much absorbed in looking out for Ludmilla, together with the
fear that Miss Hackett might either faint or grow desperate, and come away, to
attend much to it; and she only was aware that there was a general scurrying,
in which the horses and the elephant took their part; and that men and scantily
dressed females put themselves in unnatural positions; that there was a firing
of pistols and singing of vulgar songs, and finally the hero and heroine made
their bows on the elephant's back.
Miss Hackett wanted to
depart before the Bleeding Bride came on, but Dolores entreated her to stay,
and she heroically endured a little longer.
This seemed, consciously or not, to be a parody of the ballad of Lord
Thomas and Fair Annet, but of course it began with an abduction on horseback
and a wild chase, in which even the elephant did his part, and plenty more
firing. Then the future bride came on,
supposed to be hawking, during which pastime she sang a song standing upright
on horseback, and the faithless Lord Thomas appeared and courted her with the
most remarkable antics of himself and his piebald steed.
The forsaken Annet consoled
herself with careering about, taking a last leave of her beloved steed—-a
mangy-looking pony-—and performing various freaks with it, then singing a
truculent song of revenge, in pursuance of which she hid herself to await the bridal
procession. And as the bride came on,
among her attendants Dolores detected unmistakably those eyes of Gerald's! She squeezed Miss Hackett's hand, and saw
little more of the final catastrophe.
Somehow the bride was stabbed, and fell screaming, while the fair Annet
executed a war dance, but what became of her was uncertain. All Dolores knew was, that Ludmilla was
there! She had recognized not only the
eyes, but the air and figure.
When they got free of the
crowd, which was a great distress to poor Miss Hackett, Dolores said—-
"Yes, it is that poor
girl! She must be saved!"
"How? What can you do?"
"I shall telegraph to
her brother. You will help me, Miss
Hackett?"
"But-—what-—who is her
brother?" said Miss Hackett, expecting to hear he was a carpenter perhaps,
or at least a clerk.
"Mr. Underwood of Vale
Leston-—Gerald Underwood," answered Dolores. "His father made an unfortunate marriage with a singer. She really is his half-sister, and I
promised to do all I could to help him to find her and save her. He is at Oxford. I shall telegraph to him the first thing to-morrow."
There was nothing in this to
object to, and Miss Hackett would not be persuaded not to see her to the door
of Miss Vincent's lodgings, though lengthening her own walk—-alone, a thing
more terrible to her old-fashioned mind than to that of her companion.
Dolores wrote her telegram—-
"Dolores Mohun,
Valentia, Silverton, to Gerald Underwood, Trinity College, Oxford. Ludmilla here. Circus. Come."
She sent it with the more
confidence that she had received a letter from her father with a sort of
conditional consent to her engagement to Gerald, so that she could, if needful,
avow herself betrothed to him; though her usual reticence made her unwilling to
put the matter forward in the present condition of affairs. She went out to the post-office at the first
moment when she could hope to find the telegraph office at work, and just as
she had turned from it, she met a girl in a dark, long, ill-fitting jacket and
black hat, with a basket in her hand.
"Lydia!" exclaimed
Dolores, using the old Rockquay name.
"Miss Dolores!"
she cried.
"Yes, yes. You are here! I saw you last night."
"Me! Me!
Oh, I am ashamed that you did.
Don't tell Mr. Flight."
There were tears starting to
her eyes.
"Can I do anything for
you?"
"No—-no. Oh, if you could! But they have apprenticed me."
"Who have?"
"My mother and Mr.
O'Leary."
"Are they here?"
"Yes. They wanted money-—apprenticed me to this
Jellicoe! I must make haste. They sent me out to take something to the
wash, and buy some fresh butter. They
must not guess that I have met any one."
"I will walk with
you. I have been telegraphing to your
brother that I have found you."
"Oh, he was so good to
me! And Mr. Flight, I was so grieved to
fail him. They made me get up and dress
in the night, and before I knew what I was about I was on the quay—-carried out
to the ship. I had no paper-—no means
of writing; I was watched. And now it
is too dreadful! Oh, Miss Dolores! if
Mrs. Henderson could see the cruel positions they try to force on me, the ways
they handle me-—they hurt so; and what is worse, no modest girl could bear the
way they go on, and want me to do the same.
I could when I was little, but I am stiffer now, and oh! ashamed. If I can't—-they starve me—-yes, and beat
me, and hurt me with their things. It
is bondage like the Israelites, and I don't want to get to like it, as they say
I shall, for then-—then there are those terrible songs to be sung, and that
shocking dress to be shown off in. My
mother will not help. She says it is
what she went through, and all have to do, and that I shall soon leave off
minding; but oh, I often think I had rather die than grow like-—like Miss
Bellamour. I hope I shall (they often
frighten me with that horse), only somehow I can't wish to be killed at the
moment, and try to save myself. And
once I thought I would let myself fall, rather than go on with it, but I
thought it would be wicked, and I couldn't.
But I have prayed to God to help me and spare me; and now He has
heard. And will my brother be able—-or
will he choose to help me?"
"I am sure of it, my
poor dear girl. He wishes nothing
more."
"Please turn this
way. They must not see me speak to any
one."
"One word more. How long is the circus to be here?"
"We never know; it
depends on the receipts—-may go to-morrow.
Oh, there-—"
She hurried on without
another word, and Dolores slowly returned to Miss Vincent's lodgings. Her lecture was to be given at three
o'clock, but she knew that she should have to be shown the school and
class-rooms in the forenoon. Gerald, as
she calculated the trains, might arrive either by half-past twelve or a quarter
past four.
Nervously she endured her
survey of the school, replying to the comments as if in a dream, and hurrying
it over, so as must have vexed those who expected her to be interested. She dashed off to the station, and reached
it just in time to see the train come in.
Was it—-yes, it was Gerald who sprang out and came towards her.
"Dolores! My gallant Dolores! You have found her!"
"Yes, but in cruel
slavery-—apprenticed."
"That can be
upset. Her mother-—is she here?"
"Yes, and O'Leary. They sold her, apprenticed her, and these
people use her brutally. She told me
this morning. No, I don't think you can
get at her now."
"I will see her mother
at any rate. I may be able to buy her
off. Where shall I find you?"
Dolores told him, but
advised him to meet her at Miss Hackett's, whom she thought more able to help,
and more willing than Miss Vincent, in case he was able to bring Ludmilla away
with him.
"Have you heard from my
father?"
"Yes—-what I
expected."
"But it will make no
difference in the long run."
"Dearest, do I not
trust your brave words? From Trieste I
hear that the endeavour of Benista to recover his wife is proved. There's one step of the chain. Is it dragging us down, or setting us
free?"
"Free-—free from the
perplexities of property," cried Dolores.
"Free to carve out a life."
"Certainly I have
wished I was a younger son. Only if it
could have come in some other way!"
Dolores had to go to
luncheon at Miss Vincent's, and then to deliver her lecture. It was well that she had given it so often
as almost to know it by heart, for the volcano of anxiety was surging high
within her.
As she went out she saw
Gerald waiting for her, and his whole mien spoke of failure.
"Failed! Yes," he said. "The poor child is regularly bound to
that Jellicoe, the master of the concern, for twenty-five pounds, the fine that
my uncle brought on the mother, as O'Leary said with a grin, and she is still
under sixteen."
"Is there no hope till
then?"
"He and O'Leary declare
there would be breach of contract if she left them even then. I don't know whether they are right, but any
amount of mischief might be done before her birthday. They talk of sending her to Belgium to be trained, and that is
fatal."
"Can't she be bought
off?"
"Of course I tried, but
I can't raise more than seventy pounds at the utmost just now."
"I could help. I have twenty-three pounds. I could give up my term."
"No use. They know that I shall not be of age till
January, besides the other matter. I
assured them that however that might end, my uncles would honour any order I
might give for the sake of rescuing her, but they laughed the idea to
scorn. O'Leary had the impudence to
intimate, however, that if I chose to accept the terms expressed, 'his wife
might be amenable.'"
"They are?"
"Five hundred for
evidence on the previous marriage in my favour; but I am past believing a word
that she says, at least under O'Leary's dictation. She might produce a forgery.
So I told him that my uncle was investigating the matter with the consul
in Sicily; and the intolerable brutes sneered more than over at the idea of the
question being in the hands of the interested party, when they could upset that
meddling parson in a moment."
"Can nothing be
done?"
"I thought of asking
one of your old ladies whether there is a lawyer or Prevention of Cruelty man
who could tell me whether the agreement holds, but I am afraid she is too
old. You saw no mark of
ill-usage?"
"Oh no. They would be too cunning."
"If we could help her
to escape what a lark it would be!"
"I do believe we
could" cried Dolores. "If I
could only get a note to her! And this
red ulster! I wonder if Miss Hackett
would help!"
Dolores waited for Miss
Hackett, who had lingered behind, and told her as much of the facts as was
expedient. There was a spice of romance
in the Hackett soul, and the idea of a poor girl, a G. F. S. maiden, in the
hands of these cruel and unscrupulous people was so dreadful that she was
actually persuaded to bethink herself of means of assistance.
"Where did you meet the
girl?" she said. Dolores told her
the street.
"Ah! depend upon it the
things were with Mrs. Crachett, who I know has done washing for people about on
fair-days, when they can't do it themselves.
She has a daughter in my G. F. S. class; I wonder if we could get any help
from her."
It was a very odd device for
a respectable associate and member of G. F. S. to undertake, but if ever the
end might justify the means it was on the present occasion. Fortune favoured them, for Melinda Crachett
was alone in the house, ironing out some pale pink garments.
"Are you washing for
those people on the common, Melinda?" asked Miss Hackett.
"Yes, Miss
Hackett. They want them by seven
o'clock to-night very particular, and they promised me a seat to see the
performance, miss, if I brought them in good time, and I wondered, miss, if you
would object."
"Only tell me, Melinda,
whom you saw."
"I saw the lady
herself, ma'am, the old lady, when I took the things."
"No young person?"
"Yes, ma'am. It was a very nice young lady indeed that
brought me down this pink tunic, because it got stained last night, and she
said her orders was to promise me a ticket if it came in time; but, oh my!
ma'am, she looked as if she wanted to tell me not to come."
"Poor girl! She is a G. F. S. member, Melinda, and I do
believe you would be doing a very good deed if you could help us to get her
away from those people."
Melinda's eyes grew round
with eagerness. She had no doubts
respecting what Miss Hackett advised her to do, and there was nothing for it
but to take the risk. Then and there Dolores
sat down and pencilled a note, directing Ludmilla to put on the red ulster
after her performance, if possible, when people were going away, and slip out
among them, joining Melinda, who would convey her to Miss Hackett's. This was safer than for Gerald to be nearer,
since he was liable to be recognized.
Still it was a desperate risk, and Dolores had great doubts whether she
should ever see her red Maori again.
So in intense anxiety the
two waited in Miss Hackett's parlour, where the good lady left them, as she
said, to attend to her accounts, but really with an inkling or more of the
state of affairs between them. Each had
heard from New Zealand, and knew that Maurice Mohun was suspending his consent
till he had heard farther from home, both as to Gerald's character and
prospects, and there was no such absolute refusal, even in view of his
overthrow of the young man's position, as to make it incumbent on them to break
off intercourse. Colonial habits modified
opinion, and to know that the loss was neither the youth's own fault nor that
of his father, would make the acceptance a question of only prudence, provided
his personal character were satisfactory.
Thus they felt free to hold themselves engaged, though Gerald had
further to tell that his letters from Messina purported that an old priest had
been traced out who had married the impresario, Giovanni Benista, a native of
Piedmont, to Zoraya Prebel, Hungarian, in the year 1859, when ecclesiastical
marriages were still valid without the civil ceremony.
"Another step in my
descent," said Gerald.
"Still, it does not prove whether this first husband was
alive. No; and Piedmont, though a small
country, is a wide field in which to seek one who may have cut all connection
with it. However, these undaunted
people of mine are resolved to pursue their quest, and, as perhaps you have
heard, are invited to stay at Rocca Marina for the purpose."
"I should think that
was a good measure; Mr. White gets quarry-men from all the country round, and
would be able to find out about the villages."
"But how unlikely it is
that one of these wanderers would have kept up intercourse with his
family! They may do their best to
satisfy the general conscience, but I see no end to it."
"And a more immediate
question—-what are we to do with your sister if she escapes to-night? Shall I take her to Mrs. Henderson?"
"She would not be safe
there. No, I must carry her straight to
America, the only way to choke off pursuit."
"You! Your term!"
"Never mind that. I shall write to the Warden pleading urgent
private business. I have enough in hand
for our passage, and the 'Censor' will take my articles and give me an
introduction. I shall be able to keep
myself and her. I have a real longing
to see Fiddler's Ranch."
"But can you rough
it?" asked Dolores, anxiously looking at his delicate girlish complexion
and slight figure.
"Oh yes! I was born to it. I know what it was when Fiddler's Ranch was far from the
civilization of Violinia, as they call it now.
I don't mean to make a secret of it, and grieve your heart or
Cherie's. She has had enough of that,
but I must make the plunge to save my sister, and if things come round it will
be all the better to have some practical knowledge of the masses and the social
problems by living among them."
"Oh that I could make
the experiment with you!"
"You will be my
inspiration and encouragement, and come to me in due time."
He came round to her, and
she let him give her his first kiss.
"God will help
us," she said reverently; "it is the cause of uprightness and
deliverance from cruel bondage."
The plans had been settled;
Gerald had arranged with a cab which was to take him and his sister to a house
five miles out in the country, of which Miss Hackett had given the name, so
that they might seem to have been spending the evening with her. Thence it was but a step to the station of a
different railway from that which went through Silverton, and they would go by
the mail train to London, where Ludmilla could be deposited at Mrs. Grinstead's
house at Brompton, where Martha could provide her with an outfit, while Gerald
saw the editor of the 'Censor', got some money from the bank, telegraphed to
Oxford for his baggage, and made ready to start the next morning for Liverpool,
whither he had telegraphed to secure a second-class passage to New York for G.
F. Wood and Lydia Wood, the names which he meant to be called by.
"The first name I
knew," he said, "the name of Tom Wood, is far more real to me or my
father than Edgar Underwood ever could be."
He promised that Dolores
should have a telegram at Clipstone by the time she reached it, for she had to
give her second lecture the next day, and was to return afterwards. All this had been discussed over and over again,
and there had been many quakings and declarations that the scheme had failed,
and that neither girl could have had courage, nor perhaps adroitness, and that
the poor prisoner had been re-captured.
Gerald had made more than one expedition into the little garden to
listen, and had filled the house with cold air before he returned, sat down in
a resigned fashion, and declared—-
"It is all up! That comes of trusting to fools of
girls."
"Hark!"
He sprang up and out into
the vestibule. Miss Hackett opened the
door into the back passage. There stood
the "red mantle" and Melinda Crachett. Gerald took the trembling figure in his arms with a brotherly
kiss.
"My little
sister," he said, "look to me," then gave her to Dolores, who
led her into the drawing-room, and put her into an arm-chair.
She could hardly stand, but
tried to jump up as Miss Hackett entered.
"No, no, my poor child,
she said, "sit still! Rest. Were you followed?"
"No; I don't think they
had missed me."
She was so breathless that
Miss Hackett would have given her a glass of wine, but she shook her head,
"Oh no, thank you! I've kept the pledge."
The tea-things were there,
waiting for her arrival. Dolores would
have helped her take off the red garment, but she shrank from it. She had only her gaudy theatrical dress
beneath. How was she to go to London in
it? However, Miss Hackett devised that
she should borrow the little maid-servant's clothes, and Gerald undertook to
send them back when Martha should have fitted her out at Brompton. The theatrical costume Miss Hackett would
return by a messenger without implicating Melinda Crachett. They took the girl up-stairs to effect the
change, and restore her as much as they could, and she came down with her rouge
washed off, and very pale, but looking like herself, as, poor thing, she always
did look more or less frightened, and now with tears about her eyelids, tears
that broke forth as Gerald went up to her, took her by the hand, and said—-
"Brighten up, little
sister; you have given yourself to me, and I must take care of you now."
"Ah, I do beg your
pardon, but my poor mother—-I didn't know—-"
"You don't want to go
back?"
"Oh no, no," and
she shuddered again; "but I am sorry for her. She has such a hard master, and she used to be good to me."
Miss Hackett had come
opportunely to make her drink some tea, and then made both take food enough to
sustain them through the night journey.
Then, and afterwards, they gathered what had been Ludmilla's sad little
story. Her father, in spite of his
marriage, which was according to the lax notions of German Protestants, had
been a fairly respectable man, very fond of his little daughter, and
exceedingly careful of her, though even as a tiny child he had made her useful,
trained her to singing and dancing, and brought her forward as a charming
little fairy, when it was all play to her.
"Oh, we were so happy
in those days," she said tearfully.
When he died it was with an
injunction to his wife not to bring up Ludmilla to the stage now that he was
not there to take care of her. With the
means he had left she had set up her shop at Rockquay, and though she had never
been an affectionate mother, Ludmilla had been fairly happy, and had been a
favourite with Mr. Flight and the school authorities, and had been thoroughly
imbued with their spirit. A change had,
however, come over her mother ever since an expedition to Avoncester, when she
had met O'Leary. She had probably
always contrived a certain amount of illicit trade in tobacco and spirits by
means of the sailors in the foreign traders who put into the little harbour of
Rockquay; but her daughter was scarcely cognizant of this, and would not have
understood the evil if she had done so, nor did it affect her life. O'Leary had, however, been the clown in Mr.
Schnetterling's troupe, and had become partner with Jellicoe. The sight of him revived all Zoraya's
Bohemian inclinations, and on his side he knew her to have still great
capabilities, and recollected enough of her little daughter to be sure that she
would be a valuable possession.
Moreover, Mrs. Schnetterling had carried her contraband traffic a little
too far, especially where the boys of the preparatory school were
concerned. She began to fear the gauger
and the policeman, and she had consented to marry O'Leary at the Avoncester
register office, meaning to keep the matter a secret until she could wind up
her affairs at Rockquay. Even her
daughter was kept in ignorance.
Two occurrences had,
however, precipitated matters. One was
the stir that Clement had made about the school-boys' festival, ending in the
fine being imposed; the other, the discovery that the graceful, well-endowed
young esquire was the child who had been left to probable beggary with a dying
father twenty years previously.
Jellicoe, the principal
owner of the circus, advanced the money for the fine, on condition of the girl
and her mother becoming attached to the circus; and the object of O'Leary was
to make as much profit as possible out of the mystery that hung over the young
heir of Vale Leston. His refusal to
attend to the claim on him, together with spite at his uncle, as having brought
about the prosecution, and to Mr. Flight for hesitating to remunerate the girl
for the performance that was to have been free; perhaps too certain debts and
difficulties, all conspired to occasion the midnight flitting in such a manner
as to prevent the circus from being pursued.
Thenceforth poor Lida's life
had been hopeless misery, with all her womanly and religious instincts
outraged, and the probability of worse in future. Jellicoe, his wife, and O'Leary had no pity, and her mother very
little, and no principle; and she had no hope, except that release might come
by some crippling accident. Workhouse
or hospital would be deliverance, since thence she could write to Mrs.
Henderson.
She shook and trembled still
lest she should be pursued, though Miss Hackett assured her that this was the
last place to be suspected, and it was not easy to make her eat. Presently Gerald stood ready to take her to
the cab.
Dolores came to the gate
with them. There was only space for a
fervent embrace and "God bless you!" and then she stood watching as
they went away into the night.
There was of course in
Adeline
A calm patrician polish in the address,
Which ne'er can pass the
equinoctial line
Of anything which nature could express.—-BYRON.
It was a late autumn or
winter day, according to the calendar, when The Morning Star steamed up to the
quay of Rocca Marina, but it was hard to believe it, for all the slope of one
of the Maritime Alps lay stretched out basking in the noonday sunshine, green
and lovely, wherever not broken by the houses below, or the rocks quarried out
on the mountain side. Some snow lay on
the further heights, enough to mark their forms, and contrast with the soft
sweetness of the lap of the hills and the glorious Mediterranean blue.
Anna and Franceska stood
watching and exclaiming in a trance of delight, as one beauty after another
revealed itself-—the castellated remnant of the old tower, the gabled house
with stone balconies and terraces, with parapets and vases below, the little
white spire of the church tower of the English colony, looking out of the
chestnut and olive groves above, and the three noble stone pines that sheltered
the approach.
Mr. White, in his launch,
came out with exulting and hearty welcome to bring them ashore, through the
crowd of feluccas, fishing-vessels, and one or two steamers that filled the
tiny bay, and on landing, the party found an English wagonette drawn by four
stout mules waiting to receive them—-mules, as being better for the heights
than horses.
Anna and Franceska insisted
on walking with Mr. White and Sir Robert, and they fairly frisked in the
delicious air of sea and mountain after being so long cramped on board ship,
stopping continually with screams of delight over violets or anemones, or the
views that unfolded themselves as they went higher and higher. The path Mr. White chose was a good deal
steeper than the winding carriage road cut out of the mountain side, and they
arrived before the mules with Mrs. Grinstead and her brother, at the Italian
garden, with a succession of broad terraces protected and adorned with open
balustrades, with vases of late blooming flowers at intervals, and broad stone
steps, guarded by carved figures, leading from one to another.
"It is like Beauty's
palace," sighed out in delight Francie to her sister.
"There's Beauty,"
laughed Anna, as at the open window upon the highest verandah-shaded balcony
appeared the darkly handsome Maura and Mrs. White, her small features as pretty
as ever, but her figure a good deal more embonpoint than in Rockquay times.
Hers was a very warm welcome
to the two sisters and their friend, and to the others who reached the front
door a few minutes later. Such an
arrival was very pleasant to her, for it must be confessed that, save for the
English visitors, who were always gladly received, the life at Rocca Marina was
a dull one, in spite of its being near enough to San Remo by the railway for
expeditions for a day.
Within, the dwelling was a
combination of the old Italian palace with English comforts. Mr. White, in his joy at possessing his
graceful lady wife, had spared no expense in making it a meet bower for her,
and Geraldine was as much amused as fascinated by the exquisiteness of all
around her; as she sat, in a most luxurious chair, looking out through the open
window at the blue sea, yet with a lively wood fire burning under a beauteous
mantelpiece; statues, pictures, all that was recherche around, while they drank
their English tea out of almost transparently delicate cups, filled by Maura
out of a beautifully chased service of plate on a marble mosaic table.
"And now you must let
me show you your rooms," said Mrs. White. "I thought you would like
to have them en suite, for I am such a poor creature that I cannot breakfast
down-stairs, and Mr. White is obliged to be out early."
So she led the way through a
marble hall, pillared in different colours, rich and rare, with portraits of
ancient Contes and Contessas on the walls, up a magnificent stone stair with a
carved balustrade, to a suite indeed, where, at the entrance, Sibby was found
very happy at her welcome from Mrs. Mount, who was equally glad to receive a
countrywoman.
There was a sitting-room
with a balcony looking out on the bay, a study and bedroom beyond for Clement
on one side, and on the other charmingly fitted rooms for Geraldine, for her
nieces, and her maid; and Mrs. White left them, telling them the dinner hour,
and begging them to call freely and without scruple for all and everything they
could wish for. Nothing would be any
trouble.
"We have even an
English doctor below there," she said, pointing to the roofs of the
village. "There are so many accidents
that Mr. White thought it better to be provided, so we have a little hospital
with a trained nurse."
It was all very good, very
kind, yet the very family likeness to Lilias Merrifield and Jane Mohun made
Geraldine think how much more simple in manner one of them would have been
without that nouveau riche tone of exultation.
"Here is a whole packet
of letters," ended Mrs. White, "that came for you these last two or
three days."
She pointed to a
writing-table and went away, while the first letters so amazed Geraldine that
she could think of nothing else, and hastened to summon Clement.
It was from Gerald, posted
by the pilot from on board the steamer, very short, and only saying—-
"DEAREST CHERIE,
"I know you will
forgive me, or rather see that I do not need pardon for rescuing my
sister. Anywhere in England she would
be in danger of being reclaimed to worse than death. Dolores will tell you all the situation, and I will send a letter
as soon as we arrive at New York. No
time for more, except that I am as much as ever
"Your own, my Cherie's
own,
"GERALD."
There followed directions
how to send letters to him through the office of the 'Censor'.
Then she opened, written on
the same day, a letter from Dolores Mohun, sent in obedience to his telegram,
when he found that time for details failed him. It began—-
"DEAR MRS. GRINSTEAD,
"I know you will be
shocked and grieved at the step that your nephew has taken, but when you
understand the circumstances, I think you will see that it was unavoidable for
one of so generous and self-sacrificing a nature. I may add, that my aunt Lily is much touched, and thoroughly
approves, and my uncle Jasper says imprudence is better than selfishness."
After this little preamble
ensued a full and sensible account of Ludmilla's situation and sufferings at
the circus, and the history of her escape, demonstrating (to the writer's own
satisfaction) that there was no other means of securing the poor child.
Of course the blow to
Geraldine was a terrible one.
"We have lost
him," she said.
"That does not
follow," said Clement. "It is
quite plain that he does not mean to cut himself off from us, and America is
not out of reach."
"It is just the
restless impatience that you warned him against.
As if he could not have
taken her to the Hendersons."
"She would not have
been safe there, unless acts of cruelty could have been proved."
"Or to us, out
here."
"My dear Cherry,
imagine his sudden arrival with such an appendage! I really think the boy has acted for the best."
"Giving up Oxford
too!"
"That can be
resumed."
"And most likely that
wretched little girl will run off in a month's time. It is in the blood."
"Come, come, Cherry. I can't have you in this uncharitable
mood."
"Then I mustn't say
what I think of that Dolores abetting him."
"No, I like her
letter."
It fell hard upon Geraldine
to keep all to herself, while entertained in full state by her hosts. Perhaps Adeline would have liked something
on a smaller scale, for she knew what was ostentatious; but though Mr. White
had once lived in a corner of the castle, almost like an artisan; since he had
married, it had become his pride to treat his guests on the grandest London
scale, and the presence of Sir Robert Audley for one night evoked all his
splendours. He made excuses for having
no one to meet the party but the chaplain and his wife and the young doctor,
who he patronizingly assured them was "quite the gentleman," and
Theodore White-— "Just to fill up a corner and amuse the young
ladies." Theodore had been lately
sent out, now a clerk, soon to be a partner; but he was very shy, and did not
amuse the young ladies at all! Indeed,
he was soon so smitten with admiration for Franceska, that he could do nothing
but sit rapt, looking at her under his eyelids.
The chaplain had received an
offer of preferment in England, and was anxious to go home as soon as
possible. Clement was now so well, that
after assisting the next day in the week's duties among the people, and at the
pretty little church that Mr. White had built, he ventured to accept the
proposal of becoming a substitute until the decision was made or another
chaplain found. He was very happy to be
employed once more in his vocation.
The climate suited him
exactly, and the loan of the chaplain's house would relieve him and Geraldine
from the rather oppressive hospitality of the castle. The search for Benista's antecedents would of course go on with
the assistance of Mr. White and his Italian foreman, but both assured him that
the inquiry might be protracted, as winter was likely to cut off the
communications with many parts of the interior, and many of the men would be at
their distant homes till the spring advanced.
Meantime, Geraldine and her
nieces had a home life, reading, studying Italian, drawing with endless
pleasure, and the young ones walking about the chestnut-covered slopes. She sat in the gardens or drove with Mrs. White
in her donkey-chaise, and would have been full of enjoyment but for the abiding
anxiety about Gerald. It was rather a
relief not to be living in the same house with the Whites, whose hospitality
and magnificence were rather oppressive.
Mr. White wanted to have everything admired, and its cost appreciated;
and Adeline, though clever enough, had provoking similarities and
dissimilarities to her sisters. The
same might be said of Maura, to whom Francie at first took a great fancy, but
Anna, who had seen more of the world, had a sense of distrust.
"There's something
fawning about her ways," said she, "and I don't know whether she is
quite sincere."
"Perhaps it is only
being half Greek," said Geraldine.
However, the two families
met every day, and Mrs. White called their intercourse "such a boon, such
a charming friendship," all unaware that there was no real confidence or
affection.
They had not long been
seated when the little Italian messenger boy brought them a budget of
letters. Of course the first that
Geraldine opened was in her nephew's writing.
It had been written at intervals throughout the voyage, and finished on
landing at New York.
Passing over the expressions
of unabated affection, and explanation of the need of removing Ludmilla out of
reach of her natural guardians, with the date on the second day of the voyage,
the diary continued:
"Whom, as the fates
would have it, should I have encountered but the Cacique! Yes, old Fernan and Marilda have the
stateliest of state-rooms in this same liner, and he was as much taken aback as
I was when we ran against one another over a destitute and disconsolate Irish
family in the steerage. Marilda is as
yet invisible, as is my poor little Lida.
It is unlucky, for the good man is profuse in his offers of patronage,
and I don't mean to be patronized."
Then, after some clever
descriptions of the fellow second-class passengers in his own lively vein,
perhaps a little forced, so as not to betray more than he intended, that he
felt them uncongenial, there came—-
"Lida is up again; she
is a sweet little patient person, and I cannot withstand Fernan's wish to
present her to his wife, who remains prostrate at present, and will till we get
out of the present stiff breeze and its influences.
"12th.-—The
presentation is over, and it has ended in Lida devoting herself to the succour
of Marilda, and likewise of her maid, who is a good deal worse than herself.
"16th.-—These amiable
folks want to take Lida off with them, not to say myself, to their 'Underwood'
in the Rockies; but I don't intend her to be semi-lady's-maid, semi-companion,
as she is becoming, but to let her stand on her own legs, or mine, and put her
to a good school at New York. I have
finished an article on 'Transatlantic Travellers' for the 'Censor', also some
reviews, and another paper that may pave my way to work in New York or
elsewhere. My craving is for the work
of hard hands, but I look at mine, and fear I run more to the brain than the
hands. My father must have been of
finer physique than the Sioux bullet left to me; but I have no fears."
"No, indeed,"
sighed Geraldine; "he has not the fine athletic strength of his dear
father, but still—-still I think there is that in him which Edgar had
not."
"Force of
character," said Clement, "even if he is wrong-headed. Here is Fernan's letter—-
"'Imagine my amazement
at finding Gerald on board with us. He
tells me that you are aware of his escapade, so I need not explain it. He is not very gracious to either of us, and
absolutely refuses all offers of assistance either for himself or his
sister. However, I hope to be able to
keep a certain watch over him without offending him, and to obviate some of the
difficulties in his way, perhaps unknown to him. Marilda has, as usual, suffered greatly on the voyage, but the
little Lida, as he calls her, has been most attentive and useful both to her
and her maid, who was quite helpless, and much the worst of the two. My wife was much prejudiced against Lida at
first, but has become very fond of her, and is sure that she is a thoroughly
good girl-—worth the sacrifice Gerald has made for her. In his independent mood, he will not hear of
our offering a home to the poor child; but if, as I hope, your researches turn
out in his favour, he may consent to let us find suitable education for
her. At any rate, I promise Geraldine
not to leave these two young things to their fate, though I may have to act
secretly. I can never forget how I took
him from his father's side, and the baptism almost in blood. We go to New Orleans first, and after the
cold weather home, but letters to the Bank will find us.'"
"Good, dear old Fernan
and Marilda!" cried Geraldine, "I can see their kindness, and how,
with all their goodness, it must jar on Gerald's nerves."
"I hope he won't be an
ass," returned Clement. "Such
patient goodness ought not to be snubbed by-—" He caught his sister's eye,
and made his last words "youthful theorists."
Mrs. Henderson too forwarded
a letter from Lida, being sure that it would be a great pleasure to Mrs.
Grinstead. It went into many more
particulars about the miseries of the circus training than had been known
before, and the fears and hints which made it plain that it had been quite
right to avail herself of the means of escape; after which was added—-
"I never thought to be
so happy as I am here. My brother is
the noblest, most generous, most kind of creatures, and that he should do all
this for me, after all the harm he has suffered from my poor mother! It quite overpowers me when I think of
it. I see a tear has dropped, but it is
such a happy one. Please tell Mr.
Flight what peace and joy this is to me, after all my prayers and trying to
mind what he said. There are such a
gentleman and lady here, cousins to my brother, Sir Ferdinand and Lady Travis
Underwood. She has been more or less
ill all through the voyage, and her maid worse, and she has let me do what I
could for her, and has been kindness itself.
They were at the bazaar. Did you
see Sir Ferdinand? He is the very
grandest and handsomest man I ever did see, and so good to all the poor
emigrants in the steerage. He is very
kind to me; but I see that my brother will not have me presume. They have bidden me write to them in any
need. I never thought there could be so
many good people out of Rockquay.
Please give my duty to Mr. Flight and Lady Flight, good Miss Mohun, and
dear Miss Dolores. I wear her ulster,
and bless the thought of her."
And yet if each the other's
name
In some unguarded moment heard,
The heart that once you
thought so tame
Would flutter like a wounded bird.-—ANON.
Letters continued to come
with fair regularity; and it was understood that Gerald, with Lida, had taken
up his quarters in an "inexpensive" boarding-house at New York, where
he had sent Lida to a highly-recommended day-school, and he was looking out for
employment. His articles had been
accepted, he said; but the accounts of his adventures and of his fellow-inmates
gave the sense that there was more humour in the retrospect than in the
society, and that they were better to write about than to live with. He never confessed it, but to his aunt, who
understood him, it was plain that he found it a different thing to talk
philanthropic socialism, or even to work among the poor, and to live in the
society of the unrefined equals.
Then he wrote that Lida had
come one day and told him that one of the girls, with whom she had made
friends, had a bad attack of cough and bronchitis, and could not fulfil an
engagement that she had made to come and sing for a person who was giving
lectures upon national music. "'I
looked at some of her songs,' little Lida said in her humble way, 'and I know
them. Don't you think, brother, I might
take her part?' Well, not to put too
fine a point upon it, it was not an unwelcome notion, for my articles, though
accepted, don't bring in the speedy remuneration with which fiction beguiles
the aspirant. Only one of them, which I
send you, has seen the light, and the 'Censor' is slow, though sure, so dollars
for immediate expenses run short. I
called on the fellow, Mr. Gracchus B. Van Tromp, to see whether he were fit
company for my sister, and I found him much superior to his name—-gentlemanlike
and intelligent, not ill-read, and pretty safe, like most Yankees, to know how
to behave to a young girl. When he
found I could accompany my sister on piano or violin he was transported. Moreover, he could endure to be enlightened
by a Britisher on such little facts as the true history of Auld Robin Gray and
the Wacht am Rhein. The lecture was a
marked success. We have another
tonight, 16th. It has resulted in a
proposal to these two interesting performers to accompany the great Gracchus on
a tour through the leading 'cities,' lecturing by turns with him and
assisting. He has hitherto picked up as
he could 'local talent,' but is glad of less uncertain help, and so far as
appears, he is superior to jealousy, though he sees that I'm better read, 'and
of the cut that takes the ladies.' It
is no harm for Lida; she was not learning much, and I can cultivate her better
when I have her to myself, and get her not to regard me so much like a lion, to
be honoured with distant respect and obedience. We shall get dollars enough to keep us going till my talents
break upon the world, and obtain stunning experiences for the 'Censor'. My father's dear old violin is coming to the
front. Our first start will be at
Boston; but continue to write to Gerald F. Wood, care of Editor of 'Cole's
Weekly'."
"How like his
father!" was the natural exclamation; but the details that followed in
another week were fairly satisfactory, and the spirit of independence was a
sound one, which had stood harder proofs than perhaps his home was allowed to
know, though these were early days.
February was beginning to
open the buds and to fill the slopes with delicate anemones, as well as to
bring back Mr. White's workmen, among whom Clement could make inquiries. One young man knew the name of Benista as
belonging to a family in a valley beyond his own, but it was not an easily
accessible one, and a fresh fall of snow had choked the ravine, and would do so
for weeks to come.
Yet all was lovely on the
coast, and Mr. White having occasion to go to San Remo, offered to take the
three girls with him.
"Young ladies always
have a turn for shops," said he.
"I want to see the
coast," said Franceska, with a little dignity.
"But I do want some
gloves-—and some blue embroidery silk, thank you, Mr. White," said Anna,
more courteously.
"And I want some
handkerchiefs, if Mr. White will take me too!" returned Uncle Clement in
the same tone.
"I know so well what
you mean, dear," observed Maura, sotto voce to Francie. "It is so trying to be supposed mere common-place,
when one's thoughts are on the beautiful and romantic."
It was just one of the
sayings that had begun to go against Francie's taste, and she answered—-
"Mr. White is very
good-natured."
"Ah, yes, but
so—-so-—you know."
Francie was called, and left
Mr. White's description to be unutterable.
The two elder ladies spent
the day together, and Mrs. Grinstead then heard that Jane Mohun had written,
that both Lord Ivinghoe and Lady Phyllis Devereux were recovering from the
influenza, and that Lord Rotherwood had had a slight touch of the complaint.
"It is a very serious
thing in our family," said Adeline, with all the satisfaction of having a
family, especially with a complaint, and she began to enumerate the victims of
the Devereux house and her own, only breaking off to exclaim, "I really
shall write at once to beg them all to come here for the rest of the winter,
March winds and all. My cousin
Rotherwood has never been here, and they might be quite quiet among
relations. So unlike a common health
resort."
Mrs. White's hospitable
anticipations were forestalled. The
party came home from San Remo in high spirits.
They had met Lord Rotherwood and his son in the street, they had been
greeted most warmly, and brought to luncheon at the villa, where they found not
only Lady Rotherwood and Phyllis, but Mysie Merrifield.
It was explained that their
London doctor had strongly advised immediate transplantation before there was
time to catch fresh colds, and a friend of the Marchioness, who permanently possessed
a charming house at San Remo, had offered it just as it was for the
spring. The journey had been made at
once, with one deviation on Lord Rotherwood's part, to beg for Mysie, as an
essential requisite to his "Fly's" perfect recovery. A visit had been due before, only deferred
by the general illness, and no difficulty was made in letting it be paid in
these new and delightful scenes.
Phyllis had been there before.
She was weak and languid, and would much rather have stayed at home,
except for seeing Mysie's delight in the mountains and the blue Mediterranean,
which she dimly remembered from her infancy at Malta. Only she made it a point of honour not to allow that the sea was
bluer than the bay of Rockquay.
Ivinghoe was looking ill and
disgusted, but brightened up at the sight of the visitors, and his mother, who
thought Monte Carlo too near, though she had kept as far from it as possible,
accepted the more willingly Mr. White's cordial invitation to come and spend a
day or two at Rocca Marina. Trifles
were so much out of the good lady's focus of vision that the possible dangers
in that quarter never occurred to her, though Maura was demurely bridling, and
Francie, all unawakened, but prettier than ever, was actually wearing a scarlet
anemone that Ivinghoe had given to her.
In the intervening days,
Rocca Marina was in a wonderful state of preparation. The master of it was genuinely and honestly kindly and
simple-hearted, and had entertained noble travellers before, who had been
attracted by his extensive and artistic works; but no words can describe the
satisfaction of his wife. In part there
was the heartfelt pleasure of receiving the cousin who had been like one of her
brothers in the home of her childhood; but to this was added the glory of knowing
that this same cousin was a marquis, and that the society of San Remo, nay of
all the Riviera and the Italian papers to boot, would know that she was a good
deal more than the quarry-owner's wife.
Moreover, like all her family, there was a sense of Lady Rotherwood's
coming from a different sphere, and treating them with condescension. Jane and Lily might laugh, but to Adeline it
was matter of a sort of aggressive awe, half as asserting herself as "Victoria's"
equal and relation, half as protecting her from inferior people.
Geraldine perceived and was
secretly amused. Of course all the
party dined at the castle on Saturday night, and heard some lamentations that
there was no one else to meet the distinguished guests, for the young doctor
was not thought worthy.
"But I knew you would
like a family party best, and the Underwoods are-—almost connections,
though—-"
In that "though"
was conveyed their vast inferiority to the house of Mohun.
"I always understood
that it was a very good old family," said Lady Rotherwood.
"Clement Underwood is
one of the most valuable clergy in London," said her lord; "I am glad
he is recovering. I shall be delighted
to hear him again."
Maura was standing under the
pergola with Lord Ivinghoe.
"And is not it sad for
poor Franceska Vanderkist? -—Oh! you know about poor Mr. Gerald
Underwood?" said Maura, blushing a little at the awkward subject.
"Of course," said
Ivinghoe impatiently. "He is in
America, is he not? But what has she to
do with it?"
"Oh, you know, after
being his Mona, and all. It can't go
any further till it is cleared up."
Phyllis and Mysie came up,
asking Maura to tell them the name of a mountain peak with a white cap. The party came up to dinner, which was as
genial and easy as the host and Lord Rotherwood could make it, and as stiff and
grand as the hostess could accomplish, aided by the deftness and grace of her
Italian servants. In the evening
Theodore came up to assist in the singing of glees, and Clement's voice was a
delightful and welcome sound in his sister's ears. Ivinghoe stood among the circle at the piano, and enjoyed. He and his sister were not particularly
musical, but enough to enjoy those remarkable Underwood voices. After that Maura never promoted musical
evenings.
An odd little Sunday-school
for the children of the English workmen had been instituted at Rocca Marina,
where Maura had always assisted the chaplain's wife, and Anna and Francie
shared the work. Mysie heard of it with
enthusiasm, for, as Ivinghoe told her, she was pining for a breath of the
atmosphere, but she came down to enjoy the delights thereof alone, taking
Maura's small class. Maura was supposed
to be doing the polite to Lady Phyllis, but in point of fact Phyllis was lying
down in the balcony of her mother's dressing-room, and Maura was gracefully
fanning herself under a great cork tree, while Lord Ivinghoe was lying on the
grass.
Francie looked languid, and
said it was getting dreadfully hot, but Mrs. Grinstead took no notice, trusting
that the cessation of attentions would hinder any feeling from going deeper, so
that—-as she could not help saying to herself-—she might not have brought the
poor child out of the frying-pan into the fire-—not an elegant proverb, but
expressing her feeling!
More especially did it do
so, when she found that Lord Rotherwood was so much delighted with the beauty
and variety of the marbles of Rocca Marina as to order a font to be made of
them for the church that was being restored at Clarebridge, and he, and still
more his son, found constant diversion in running over by train from San Remo
to superintend the design, and to select the different colours and patterns of
the stones as they were quarried out and bits polished so as to show their
beauty. Their ladies often accompanied
them, and these expeditions generally involved luncheon at the castle, and
often tea at the parsonage, but it might be gradually observed, as time went
on, that there was a shade of annoyance on the part of the great house at the
preference sometimes unconsciously shown for the society of the smaller one.
Mysie openly claimed Anna as
her own friend of some standing, and both she and Phyllis had books to discuss,
botanical or geological discoveries to communicate or puzzle out, with Mrs.
Grinstead or her nieces. Lord
Rotherwood had many more interests in common with Clement Underwood than with
Mr. White, and even the Marchioness, though more impartial and on her guard,
was sensible to Mrs. Grinstead's charm of manner and depth of
comprehension. She patronized Adeline,
but respected Mrs. Grinstead as incapable of
and insensible to patronage.
That her gentlemen should
have found such safe and absorbing occupation in the opposite direction to
Monte Carlo was an abiding satisfaction to her, and she did not analyze the
charms of the place as regarded her son.
She had seen him amused by other young ladies, as he certainly was now
by that Miss White, who was very handsome and very obliging.
She knew and he knew all the
antecedents too well for alarm, till one day she saw Maura's face, as she made
him pull down a spray of banksia from the side of a stone wall, and watched the
air of gallant courtesy with which he presented it.
Francie watched it too, as
she had watched the like before, and said nothing, but there was an odd, dull
sense of disappointment, and the glory had faded away from sea and sky, spring
though it was. Yet there were pressures
of the hand in greeting and parting, and kind, wistful looks, as if of sympathy,
little services and little attentions, that set her foolish little heart
bounding, in a way she was much ashamed to feel, and would have been more
utterly ashamed to speak of, or to suppose observed. She only avowed to Anna that it was very warm, weary weather, and
that she was tired of absence, and felt homesick, but Aunt Cherry was so kind
that she must not be told.
Lady Rotherwood proposed
moving away, but her husband and son would not hear of it till their font was
finished.
It was not unwelcome to any
one of the elder ladies that the young officer's leave would be over in another
week. Geraldine was glad that Francie
should be freed from the trial of seeing attention absorbed by Maura, and
herself so often left in the lurch, so far as that young lady could contrive
it, for though not a word was said, the brightened eye and glowing cheek,
whenever Lord Ivinghoe brought her forward, or paid her any deference or
civility, were dangerous symptoms.
Peace of mind in so modest and innocent a maiden would probably come
back when the excitement was once over.
As to Adeline, there was
nothing she dreaded so much as the commotion that would be excited if
Ivinghoe's flirtation came to any crisis.
His mother would never forgive her, his father would hardly do so; she
would feel like a traitor to the whole family, and all her attempts to put a
check on endeavours on Maura's part to draw him on-—an endeavour that began to
be visible to her-—were met by apparent unconsciousness or by tears. And when she ventured a word to her husband,
he gruffly answered that his niece's father had been an officer in the army,
and he could make it worth any one's while to take her! Young lords were glad enough in these days
to have something to put into their pockets.
Then in that time and place
I spoke to her.-—TENNYSON.
"Office of 'Lacustrian Intelligencer,'
"Jonesville, Ohio,
"March 20.
"DEAREST CHERIE,
"I told you in my last
that the chief boss in the office at New York had written to me that he had
been asked to send an intelligent young man to sub-edit the Lacustrian
Intelligencer at Jonesville, a rising city on Lake Erie. I thought it would be worth while to look at
it, especially as we were booked to give a lecture at Sandusky, and moreover
our relations to Gracchus have been growing rather strained, and I do not think
this wandering life good for Lida in the long run; nor are my articles paid
enough for to be a dependence. So after
holding forth at Sandusky, we took our passage in a little steamer which
crosses the little bay in the Lake to Jonesville-—one of those steamers just
like a Noah's Ark.
"Presently Lida came up
and touched me, saying in her little awe-struck whisper (which has never been
conquered), 'Brother, I am sure I saw one of mother's cigarettes.' I said 'Bosh!' thinking it an utter
delusion; but she was so decided and so frightened, that I told her to go into
the saloon, and went forward. A woman
was going about the deck, offering the passengers a basket of candies, lights,
cigarettes, and cigars. Saving for
Lida's words, I never should have recognized her; she was thin to the last
degree, haggard, yellow, excessively shabby and forlorn-looking, and with a
hollow cough; but as her eyes met mine (those eyes that you say are our
water-mark) both of us made a sort of leap as if to go overboard, and I went up
to her at once, and would have spoken, but she cried out, 'What have you done
with Lida?' I answered that she was
safe, and demanded in my turn where were O'Leary and Jellicoe. 'Drowned, drowned,' she said, 'in the wreck
of the Sirius. They'll never trouble
you more. But Lida!' I thought that it was safe to take her into
the saloon to see Lida, when they fell into each other's arms, and afforded the
spectators a romantic spectacle. Don't
think I am making a joke of it, for it was tragic enough in the result of the
agitation. Blood was choking the poor
woman. We could only lay her down on
the couch, and happily there were lemons on board. There was a good-natured Irishman who gave me all the help he
could, even to the carrying her to his house, where his wife was equally kind. He fetched the priest, a French Canadian,
and the doctor, and Lida has been watching over her most tenderly; poor
things—-they seem really to have cared for one another, and Lida will be the
happier for having done these last duties.
"21st. She is a little better. So far as we have gathered from one who must
not talk nor be agitated, the circus had got into difficulties and debt to
Bast, the van proprietor. I believe
Lida's voice was their last hope, and they had some ghastly scheme of disposing
of her in Belgium. When they lost her,
their chances were over, and with the proceeds of their last exhibition,
Jellicoe and the O'Leary pair left the elephant, etc., to take care of
themselves and make their excuses to Mr. Bast, and started for Liverpool and
the U. S. in the Sirius. Storms
overtook them, the women were put into the first boat, those which followed
were swamped. Poor fellows, I own I
can't sing a pious dirge for them.
There were three days of hunger and exposure before the boat was picked
up, and she was finally landed at Quebec, where she was laid up with pleurisy
in the hospital. And there was a
subscription for the wrecked when she came out, which enabled her to set up
this reminiscence of her old trade, drifting from one pier or boat to another
till she came to this one, but all the time with this awful cough. The doctor thinks it her knell; her lungs
are far gone, but she may probably rally in some degree for the summer, though
hardly so as to be moved.
"That being the case, I
have been to the Lacustrian office, and engaged myself to be its hack, since I
must have some fixed pay while she lives.
Perhaps I shall be able to do a little extra writing and lecturing,
especially if she gets better, enough to spare Lida to help me. Her voice really is a lovely soprano, and
draws wonderfully, but I don't want it to be strained too early. Our good Irishwoman, Mrs. Macbride, is
willing to let us have her two rooms, left empty by her sons going west, and
her daughter marrying, on fair terms, Lida promising to be a sort of help and
to teach the children. We shall eat
with them. I shall be at the office all
day and half the night, so I don't need a sitting-room. Don't be anxious, dear old Cherie. We shall do very well, and it is only for a
time. Lida is like a little angel, and
as thankful for a smile from her mother as if she had been the reprobate
runaway.
"Your ever-loving
"GERALD."
This was the letter that
came to Mrs. Grinstead, and one with similar information went to Dolores Mohun
at her college at Cambridge. Dolores,
who had found Mysie much more sympathetic than Gillian, could not but write the
intelligence to her, and Mysie was so much struck with the beauty of the
much-injured brother and sister devoting themselves to their mother, that she
could not help telling the family party at breakfast.
"That's right,"
said Lord Rotherwood. "The mother
can clear up the doubt if any one can.
Is there nothing about it?"
"No," replied
Mysie; "I should think the poor woman was too ill to be asked."
"They must not let her
slip through their fingers without telling," added Ivinghoe.
"I have a mind to run
over to Rocca Marina and see what more they have heard there," said Lord
Rotherwood. "I suppose your letter
is from one of the girls there?"
"Oh no, it is from
Dolores."
"Dolores! She is at Cambridge. Then this news must have been round by
Clipstone! They must have known it for
days past at Rocca!" exclaimed Lord Rotherwood.
"No," said Mysie,
"this came direct to Dolores from Gerald Underwood himself. -—Oh, didn't
you know? I forgot, nobody was to know
till Uncle Maurice gave his consent."
"Consent to what?"
exclaimed Ivinghoe.
"To Dolores and
Gerald! Oh dear, mamma said so much to
me about not telling, but I did think Cousin Rotherwood knew everything.
Please-—"
Whatever she was going to
ask was cut short by Ivinghoe's suddenly striking on the table so as to make
all the cups and saucers ring as he exclaimed—-
"If ever there lived a
treacherous Greek minx!" Then,
"I beg your pardon, mother."
He was off: they saw him
dash out of the house. There was a
train due nearly at this time, as all recollected.
"Papa, had not you
better go with him?" said Lady Rotherwood.
"He will get on much
better by himself, my dear," and Lord Rotherwood threw himself back in his
chair and laughed heartily and merrily, to the amazement and mystification of
the two girls. "You will have a
beauty on your hands, my lady."
"Well, as long as it is
not that horrid White girl-—" said her ladyship, breaking off there.
"A very sorry
Rebecca," said her lord, laughing the more.
But the Marchioness rose up,
and the two cousins had to accept the signal.
The train, after the
leisurely fashion of continental railways, kept Ivinghoe fuming at the station,
and rattled along so as to give travellers a full view of the coast, more
delightful to them than to the youth, who had rushed off with intentions, he
scarce knew what, of setting right the consequences of Maura's—-was it deception,
or only a thought, of which the wish was father?
He reached the station that
led to the works at Rocca Marina. The
sun was high, the heat of the day coming on, and as he strode along, the
workmen were leaving off to take their siesta at noontide. On he went, across the private walks in the
terraced garden, not up the broad stone steps that led to the house, but to a
little group of olive trees which cut off the chaplain's house from the castle
gardens, and where stood a great cork tree, to whose branches a hammock had
been fastened, and seats placed under it.
As he opened the gate a little dog's bark was heard, and he was aware of
a broad hat under the tree.
Simultaneously a small Maltese dog sprang forward, and Francie's head
rose from leaning over the little table with a start, her cheeks deeper rose
than usual, having evidently gone to sleep over the thin book and big
dictionary that lay before her.
"Oh!" she said,
"it is you. Was I dreaming?"
"I am afraid I startled
you."
"No-—only"-—she
still seemed only half awake—-"it seemed to come out of my dream."
"Then you were dreaming
of me?"
"Oh no. At, least I don't know," she said, the
colour flushing into her face, as she sat upright, now quite awake and alive to
the question, between truthfulness and maidenly modesty.
"You were-—you were;
you don't deny it!" And as she
hung her head and grew more distressfully redder and redder, "You know
what that means."
"Indeed-—indeed-—I
couldn't help-—I never meant!
Oh-—"
It was an exclamation
indeed, for Uncle Clement's head appeared above the hammock, where he too had
been dozing over his book, with the words—-
"Halloo, young people,
I'm here!"
Franceska would have fled,
but Ivinghoe held her hand so tight that she could not wrench it away. He held it, while Clement struggled to the
ground, and then said—-
"Sir, there is no
reason you or all the world should not know how I love this dearest, loveliest
one. I came here this morning hoping
that she may grant me leave to try to win her to be my own."
He looked at Francie. Her head drooped, but she had not taken her
hand away, and the look on her face was not all embarrassment, but there was a
rosy sunrise dawning on it.
All Clement could say was
something of "Your father."
"He knows, he understands;
I saw it in his eyes," said Ivinghoe.
To Clement the surprise was
far greater than it would have been to his sister, and the experience was
almost new to him, but he could read Francie's face well enough to say—-
"My dear, I think we
had better let you run in and compose yourself, or go to your aunt, while I
talk to Lord Ivinghoe."
Trembling, frightened,
Francie was really glad to be released, as her lover with one pressure said—-
"I shall see you again,
sweetest."
She darted away, and Clement
signed to Ivinghoe to sit down with him on the bench under the tree.
"I should like this
better if you had brought your father's full assent," he said.
"There was no
time. I only read his face; he will
come to-morrow."
"No time?"
"Yes, to catch the
train. I hurried away the moment I
learnt that—-that her affections were not otherwise engaged. I never saw any one like her. She has haunted me ever since those days at
Rockquay; but-—but I was told that she cared for your nephew, and I could not
take advantage of him in his absence.
And now I have but three days more."
"Whoever told you was
under a great error," said Clement gravely, "and you have shown very
generous self-command; but the advantages of this affair are so much the
greatest on one side, that you cannot wonder if there is hesitation on our
part, till we explicitly know that our poor little girl would not be unwelcome
to your parents."
"I know that no one can
compare with her for—-for everything and anything," stammered Ivinghoe,
breaking from his mother's language into his father's, "and my father
admires her as much as I do—-almost."
"But what will he and
your mother say to her being absolutely penniless?"
"Pish!"
"And worse-—child to a
spendthrift, a man of no connection, except on his mother's side."
"She is your niece,
your family have bred her up, made her so much more than exquisitely
lovely."
"She is a good little
girl," said Clement, "but what are we? No, Ivinghoe, I do not blame you for speaking out, and she will
be the happier for the knowledge of your affection, but it will not be right of
us to give free consent, without being fully assured of that of Lord and Lady
Rotherwood."
Ivinghoe could only protest,
but Clement rose to walk to the house, where his sister was sitting under the
pergola in the agitation of answering Gerald's letter, and had only seen
Francie flit by, calling to her sister in a voice that now struck her as having
been strange and suppressed.
Clement trusted a good deal
to his sister's quicker perceptions and habit of observation to guide his
opinion in the affair that had burst on him, and was relieved that when
Ivinghoe, like the well-bred young man that he was, went up to her, and taking
her hand said, "I have been venturing to put my fate into the hands of
your niece," she did not seem astonished or overwhelmed, but said—-
"She is a dear good
girl; I do hope it will be for her happiness—-for both."
"Thank you," he
said fervently. "It will be the
most earnest desire of my life."
Geraldine thought it best to
go in quest of Francie, whom she found with Anna, incoherent and happy in the
glory of the certainty that she was loved, after the long trial of suppressed,
unacknowledged suspense. No fears of
parents, no thought of inequalities had occurred to trouble her—-everything was
absorbed in the one thought—-"he really did love her." How should she thank God enough, or pray
enough to be worthy of such joy? There
was no room for vexation or wonder at the delay, nor the attentions paid to
Maura. She hushed Anna, who was
inclined to be indignant, and who was obliged afterwards to pour out to her
aunt all her wonder, though she allowed that on his side there was nothing to
be really called flirtation, it was all Maura—-"she was sure Maura was at
the bottom of it."
"My dear, don't let us
be uncharitable; there is no need to think about it. Let us try to be like Francie, and swallow all up in
gladness. Your mother-—"
"Oh, I can't think what
she will do for joy. It will almost
make her well again."
"But remember, we don't
know what his parents will say."
And with that sobering
thought they had to go down to luncheon, where Francie sat blushing and
entranced, too happy to speak, and Ivinghoe apparently contented to look at
her. Afterwards he was allowed to take
possession of her for the afternoon, so as to be able to tease her about what
she was dreaming about him. After all
it had probably been evoked by the dog's bark and his step; for she had thought
a wolf was pursuing her, and that he had come to save her. It was quite enough to be food for a lover.
Clement would have wished to
keep all to themselves, at least till the paternal visit was over, but
Ivinghoe's days were few, and he made sure of bringing his parents on the
morrow. An expedition had been arranged
to the valley where some of the Benista family were reported to live, since the
snows had departed enough for safety; but this must needs be deferred, and
there was no doubt that the "reason why" would be sought out.
Indeed, so close was the
great house, and so minute a watch was kept, that the fact of Lord Ivinghoe's
spending the whole day at the parsonage was known, and conclusions were arrived
at. Maura stole down in the late
evening among the olive trees, ostensibly to ask Anna and Francie to come and
listen to the nightingales.
But thereby she was witness
to a scene that showed that there was another nightingale for Franceska than
the one who was singing with such energy among the olive boughs. In fact, she saw the evening farewell, and had
not the discretion, like Anna, to withdraw herself and her eyes, but beheld,
what had ever been sacred to both those young things, the first kiss.
Poor Maura, she had none of
the reticent pride and shame of an English gentlewoman. She believed herself cruelly treated, and
rushing away, fell on Anna, who was hovering near, watching to prevent any
arrival such as was always probable.
It would not be well to
relate the angry, foolish words that Anna had to hear, nor how Maura betrayed
herself and her own manoeuvre. It is
enough to say that she went home, weeping demonstratively, perhaps
uncontrollably; and that Anna, after her trying scene, was able to exalt more
than ever Ivinghoe's generosity towards the absent Gerald, and forbearance
towards Franceska. If he had ever
passed the line, it was more Maura's doing than his own.
Loath to depose the child,
your brother's son.-—SHAKESPEARE.
A telegram early the next
day announced that the Rotherwood family were on their way, and they came in
due time, the kind embrace that Francie received from each in turn being such
as to set doubts at rest.
In fact, the dread, first of
Monte Carlo, and secondly of Maura White, had done much to prepare the way with
Lady Rotherwood. If she had first heard
of her son's attachment to the pretty child who acted Mona, daughter to the
upstart Vanderkists, and with a ruined father of no good repute, she would have
held it a foolish delusion to be crushed without delay; but when this same attachment
had lasted eight or nine months, and had only found avowal on the removal of a
supposed rival; when, moreover, her darling had been ill, had revived at the
aspect of the young lady, and had conducted himself in a place of temptation so
as to calm an anxious mother's heart, she could see with his eyes, not only
that Franceska was really beautiful, graceful, and a true lady, but likely to
develop still more under favourable circumstances; that she had improved in
looks, air, and manner on her travels, also that she had never been injured by
any contact with undesirable persons, but had been trained by the excellent
Underwoods, whose gentle blood and breeding were undeniable. Nor would "the daughter of the late Sir
Adrian Vanderkist, Baronet, of Ironbeam Park," sound much amiss. He was so late, that his racing doings might
be forgotten.
Indeed, as the Marchioness
looked up to the castle, she felt that she could forgive a good deal to the
damsel who had saved the family from the "sorry Rebecca," who had
cried all night, and was still crying, whenever any more tears would come, and
not getting much pity from any of her relatives. Mr. White told her that she was a little fool to have expected
anything from a young swell; her brother said she might have known that it was
absurd to expect that any one could look at her when Miss Franceska was by; and
Mrs. White observed that it was wonderful to her to see so little respect shown
for maiden dignity, as to endure to manifest disappointment. Adeline might speak from ample experience,
and certainly her words had a salutary effect.
However, the Whites en
famille were not quite the same externally.
When Lord Rotherwood, after luncheon, went to see old White at the
works, and look after his font, he met with a reception as stiff and cold as
could well be paid to a distinguished customer who was not at all in fault; and
for the first time Mr. White was too busy to walk back with him to the castle
to see Adeline, whom he found, as usual, on a couch on the terrace in the shade
of the house, a pretty picture among the flowers and vines. She was much more open with him, as became
one who understood more of his point of view.
"Well, Rotherwood, I
suppose I am to congratulate you, though it is scarcely a fair match in a
worldly point of view."
"For which I care not a
rap. She is a good, simple girl, and a
perfect lady."
"And Victoria? May I ask, does not she think it a
misalliance, considering what these Vanderkists are-—and the Underwoods?"
"There's no one I respect
more than Lancelot Underwood. As to
Victoria, she is thankful that it is no worse."
"Ah! I know what you mean, but you can't wonder
that my husband should feel it hard that there should have been some kind of
flirtation. He is fond of Maura, you
know, and he does feel that there must have been some slyness in some one to
cause this affair to have been so suddenly sprung on us."
"Slyness-—aye, I
believe there was. Tell me, Ada, had
you any notion that that lad, Gerald Underwood, was engaged to Dolores
Mohun?"
"No; who told
you?"
"Mysie let it out. She had been warned not to mention it till
his position was ascertained, Maurice's consent and all."
"I must say Mysie
should have spoken. It was not fair
towards me to keep it back."
"Still less fair of
Maura, if that's her name, to hint at attachment between Franceska and the
boy. That was the embargo upon my poor
fellow. He rushed off to have it out
the moment he saw how matters stood."
"Well, it was a great
shame; but girls are girls, especially with those antecedents, and Maura did
not know to the contrary. You will
believe me, Rotherwood, I never had any desire that she should succeed. I would have sent her away if I could; but
you can't wonder that Mr. White is vexed, and feels as if there had been
underhand dealing."
"I see he is. But you will not let him make it unpleasant
for the Underwoods."
"Oh no, no! They have not much longer to stay. They are in correspondence about a rheumatic
clergyman."
Mrs. White, however,
determined not to expose Maura to her husband, though she reproached her, and
was rather shocked by the young lady's self-defence. It was a natural idea, and no one had ever told her to the
contrary. It was all spite in Mysie
Merrifield to proclaim it after having kept it back so long.
She really was in such a
state of mind that Mrs. White was rather relieved that the Rotherwoods had
taken Franceska to San Remo to stay till Ivinghoe had to depart. Anna was left to send off the little
felicitous note that she had written to her mother.
Each and all were writing
letters that would be received with rapture almost incredulous, for no one but
Sophia could have had any preparation.
"It is pleasant to
think of poor Alda's delight," said Geraldine, over her writing-case. "After all her troubles, to have her
utmost ambition fulfilled at last; and yet-—and yet it does seem turning that
pretty creature over to a life of temptation."
"In good hands,"
said Clement. "The youth himself
is a nice honest fellow, a mere boy as yet; but it is something to have no harm
in him at two-and-twenty and in the Guards; and his parents are evidently ready
to watch over and guide them."
"If her head does not
get turned," sighed Geraldine.
"Just as likely in any
other station," replied Clement. "The
protection must come from within, not from the externals; and I do think that
she—-yes, and he too—-have that Guard within them."
"I think the sooner we
are away from this place the better," said Geraldine. "There are such things as cold
shoulders, and perhaps displeasure is in human nature, though it is not our
fault."
"Which is the worse for
us," laughed her brother, "since we can't beg pardon."
The cold shoulder was
manifested by a note of apology the next morning from Mr. White. He was too busy to go with Mr. Underwood to
Santa Carmela on this day, but had sent the young quarry-man to act as guide,
and his foreman as interpreter. So
Clement had his long ride on mule-back mostly in silence, though this he
scarcely lamented, for he could better enjoy the mountain peaks and the valleys
bright with rich grass, with anemones of all colours, hyacinths, strange
primulas and gentians, without having to make talk to Mr. White. But his journey was without result. He did find an exceedingly old woman keeping
sheep and spinning wool with a distaff, who owned to the name of Cecca
Benista. She once had a brother. Yes, Gian was his name, but he went away, as
they all did. He had a voice
bellissima, si bellissima; and some one told her long, long ago, that he had
made his fortune, and formed a company, but he had never come home—-no, no, and
was probably dead, though she had never heard; and he had sent nothing—-no, no!
Then Clement tried the
priest of the curious little church on the hill-side, a memory of Elijah and
the convents on Mount Carmel. The
Parrocco was a courteous man, quite a peasant, and too young to know much about
the past generation. He gave Clement a
refection of white bread, goats' milk cheese, and coffee, and held up his hands
on the declining of his thin wine.
There was a kind of register of baptisms, and Giovanni Batista Benista
was hunted out, and it was found that if alive he would be over seventy years
old. But no more was known, and there
was no proof that he was dead twenty-two years before!
That long day had convinced
Geraldine that the pleasantness of intercourse with the Whites was over, and
she was not sorry that a letter was waiting for Clement to say that the
rheumatic clergyman would arrive, if desired, in another week. This was gladly accepted, and the question
remained, whither should they go?
Clement's year of absence would be over in June, and he was anxious to
get home; besides that, it was desirable to take Francie to her mother as soon
as possible. The only cause for delay
was the possibility of Gerald's extracting something further from his mother,
which might lead to further researches on the Continent; but as most places
were readily accessible from London, this was decided against, and it was
determined to go back to Brompton at the same time as the Rotherwoods returned
from San Remo.
On the last Sunday Mr. White
showed himself much more cordial than he had been since the crisis. He waited in the porch to say—-
"Well, sir, you have
given us some very excellent sermons, and I am sure we are much obliged to
you. If I can help you any more in
investigating that unlucky affair of your nephew, do not hesitate to write to
me. I shall be delighted to assist you
in coming to your rights."
"Thank you; though I
sincerely hope they are not my rights."
"Ah, well. You are not so advanced in life but that if
you came into anything good, you might marry and start on a new lease! You are pounds better than when you came here."
Which last clause was so
true that Clement could only own it, with thanks to his good-humoured host, who
lingered a little still to
say—-
"I am sorry any
vexation arose about those foolish young people, but you see young women will
wish to do the best they can for themselves, and will make mischief too if one
listens to them. A sensible man
won't. That's what I say."
Clement quite agreed, though
he was not sensible of having listened to any of the mischief-making, but he
heartily shook hands with Mr. White, and went away, glad to be at peace.
Faith's meanest deed more
favour bears,
Where hearts and wills are weighed,
Than brightest transports,
choicest prayers,
That bloom their hour and fade.-—J. H. NEWMAN.
That return to Brompton was
the signal for the numerous worries awaiting Clement. First, the doctors thought him much improved, but declared that a
return to full work at St. Matthew's would overthrow all the benefit of his
long rest, and would not hear of his going back, even with another curate, for
an experiment.
Then all went down to Vale
Leston together. Mr. Ed'dard was
welcomed with rapture by his old flock.
Alda had been almost ill with excitement and delight, and had not words
enough to show her ecstasy over her beautiful daughter, nor her gratitude to
Geraldine, to whose management she insisted on attributing the glorious
result. In vain did Geraldine disclaim
all diplomacy, Lady Vanderkist was sure that all came of her savoir faire. At any rate, it was really comfortable to be
better beloved by Alda than ever in the course of her life! Alda even intimated that she should be well
enough to come to Brompton to assist in the choice of the trousseau, and the
first annoyance was with Clement for not allotting a disproportioned sum for
the purpose. He declared that Francie
ought not to have more spent on her than was reserved for her sisters,
especially as it would be easy for her to supply all deficiencies, while Alda
could not endure that the future Lady Ivinghoe should have an outfit unworthy
of her rank, even though both Wilmet and Geraldine undertook to assist.
There were other
difficulties, for which the sojourn at Vale Leston was to be dreaded. Gerald had been of age for two months, and
there were leases to be signed and arrangements made most difficult to
determine in the present state of things.
Major and Mrs. Harewood wanted to wind up their residence in the Priory,
and to be able to move as soon as the wedding was over, since Franceska begged
that it might be at the only home she remembered, and her elders put aside
their painful recollections to gratify her; so that it was fixed for early
August, just a year since her unprepared appearance as Mona.
After all, Alda was really
too ill to go to London, and Franceska had to be sent in charge of her aunt
Cherry and of her sister Mary. Lady
Rotherwood would be in town, and might be trusted to have no unreasonable
expectations.
Poor Sophy! Penbeacon's destiny was one of the affairs
that could not be settled, and therewith her own, though her mother could not
succeed in penetrating any of the family with the horror of giving Lord
Ivinghoe such a brother-in-law.
In the midst of the
preparations came a letter from Gerald.
He did indeed write every Sunday, but of late his had been hurried
letters: he was so fully occupied and had so much writing on hand that he could
not indulge in more length.
"You have been urging
me," he said, "to find out what my mother knows. I have not liked to press the subject while
she was so ill, as she always met every hint of it with tears and
agitation. However, at last, Lida
brought her to it, and we really believe she knows no more than we do what
became of her first husband. She never
heard of him after she fled from him.
She was almost a child, and he had been very cruel to her. But she did tell us where we may be nearly
certain of finding out, namely from Signor Menotti, Via San Giacomo, Genoa, or
his successors, a man who trained singers and performers, and moreover took
charge of Benista's money, and she thinks he had considerable savings. Poor woman, I believe she had no idea of the
harm she might be doing me, though it was scarcely in human nature to see
prosperity look so aggressive without trying to profit thereby; and when she
had put herself into O'Leary's power, the notion was to make an income out of
me by private threats and holding their tongues. That I should have any objection to such an arrangement, except
on economical principles, never entered their heads, and they tried to make as
much as possible out of either me or Clement, by withholding all the
information possible till it was paid for, and our simultaneous refusal to be
blackmailed entirely disconcerted them, and made them furious. Lida said the man was violent with her
mother for letting out even what she did to trousseau, and the first annoyance
was with Clement for not allotting a disproportioned sum for the purpose. He declared that Francie ought not to have
more spent on her than was reserved for her sisters, especially as it would be
easy for her to supply all deficiencies, while Alda could not endure that the
future Lady Ivinghoe should have an outfit unworthy of her rank, even though
both Wilmet and Geraldine undertook to assist.
There were other
difficulties, for which the sojourn at Vale Leston was to be dreaded. Gerald had been of age for two months, and
there were leases to be signed and arrangements made most difficult to
determine in the present state of things.
Major and Mrs. Harewood wanted to wind up their residence in the Priory,
and to be able to move as soon as the wedding was over, since Franceska begged
that it might be at the only home she remembered, and her elders put aside
their painful recollections to gratify her; so that it was fixed for early
August, just a year since her unprepared appearance as Mona.
After all, Alda was really
too ill to go to London, and Franceska had to be sent in charge of her aunt
Cherry and of her sister Mary. Lady
Rotherwood would be in town, and might be trusted to have no unreasonable
expectations.
Poor Sophy! Penbeacon's destiny was one of the affairs
that could not be settled, and therewith her own, though her mother could not
succeed in penetrating any of the family with the horror of giving Lord
Ivinghoe such a brother-in-law.
In the midst of the
preparations came a letter from Gerald.
He did indeed write every Sunday, but of late his had been hurried
letters: he was so fully occupied and had so much writing on hand that he could
not indulge in more length.
"You have been urging
me," he said, "to find out what my mother knows. I have not liked to press the subject while
she was so ill, as she always met every hint of it with tears and agitation. However, at last, Lida brought her to it,
and we really believe she knows no more than we do what became of her first
husband. She never heard of him after
she fled from him. She was almost a
child, and he had been very cruel to her.
But she did tell us where we may be nearly certain of finding out,
namely from Signor Menotti, Via San Giacomo, Genoa, or his successors, a man
who trained singers and performers, and moreover took charge of Benista's
money, and she thinks he had considerable savings. Poor woman, I believe she had no idea of the harm she might be
doing me, though it was scarcely in human nature to see prosperity look so
aggressive without trying to profit thereby; and when she had put herself into
O'Leary's power, the notion was to make an income out of me by private threats
and holding their tongues. That I
should have any objection to such an arrangement, except on economical
principles, never entered their heads, and they tried to make as much as
possible out of either me or Clement, by withholding all the information
possible till it was paid for, and our simultaneous refusal to be blackmailed
entirely disconcerted them, and made them furious. Lida said the man was violent with her mother for letting out
even what she did to Lance, and he meant to put a heavy price even on the final
disclosure, in the trust (which I share) that it may prove the key to the
mystery. She had no notion that the
doubt was upsetting my position. Poor
thing, she never had a chance in her life-—gipsy breeding at first, then
Benista's tender mercies and the wandering life. She could not fail to love my father till his requirements piqued
her, and it was a quarrel, exasperated perhaps by the commencement of his
illness, over her neglect of my unlucky self, and her acceptance of
Schnetterling's attentions, that led to her abandoning him. I really do not think she ever realized that
it was a sin. That good Pere Duchamps
is the first priest of any kind she ever listened to, and he has had a great
effect upon her. He would like to
extend it to Lida and me, but Lida is staunch to her well-beloved Mr. Flight as
well as to me, and there is a church on the other side the bay to which I take
her when our patient is well enough to spare her to walk, or we can afford the
crossing. Easter was a comfort there.
"The warm weather has
revived the patient, and she may live some months longer, though she is a mere
skeleton. Lida tends her in the most
affectionate manner, and is really a little angel in her way. She has got some private pupils in music,
and is delighted to bring in grist to the mill, which grinds hard enough to
make me realize the old days you are so fond of recollecting.
"Don't ask me to send
you the Lacustrian. I am ashamed of it,
and of my own articles. Nothing will go
down here but the most highly spiced, and it is matter of life and death to us,
as long as my mother lives, to keep on the swaying top of the poplar tree of
popularity. You would despise the need,
and talk of Felix, but it is daily bread, and I cannot let my mother and sister
starve for opinions of mine. One
comfort for you is that if I ever do come home again to reign at Vale Leston, I
shall have seen the outcome of various theories of last year, and proved what
is the effect of having no class to raise a standard or to look up to. I don't think I shall be quite so bumptious,
and I am quite sure I shall value my Cherie's tenderness much better than I
have ever done, more shame for me! Love
to the bride and all at Vale Leston.
There is an old age of novelty about these eastern states, quite disgusting
in comparison with the reverend dignity of such a place as Vale Leston. You never thought that I appreciated
it! You will find no fault with me on
that score now. The lake is beautiful
enough, but I begin to hate the sight of it, especially when a Yankee insists
on my telling him whether we have in all Europe anything better than a
duck-pond in comparison. Little Lida is
my drop of comfort, since she has ceased to be mortally afraid of 'Brother.' Love to all and sundry again.
"Your loving G."
There was a consultation
over this letter, which ended in John Harewood's volunteering to go to Genoa,
and find out this Menotti or his representative, returning in time for the
wedding, and hoping that the uncertainty would thus be over in time for the
enjoyment of a truly prosperous event.
A letter that came before
his departure rendered Geraldine doubly anxious for the decision. Mrs. Henderson sent it to her to read,
saying that it was by Lady Merrifield's advice, since she thought that it
should be known how it was with Gerald, for even to Dolores he had not told
half what Ludmilla related.
"MY DEAREST MRS.
HENDERSON,
"It is a long time
since I received your dearest, kindest of letters, and if I did not answer it
sooner, it was not from want of gratitude, but attendance on my poor dear
mother and assistance to our landlady occupies me at every minute that I can
spare from giving music lessons to some private families, and an evening class. I am very thankful to be able to earn
something, so as to take off something of the burthen on my dear brother's
shoulders. For, alas! the care and
support of my mother and me weigh very heavily upon him. The proprietor of the Lacustrian has parted
with his other clerk, and my brother has the entire business of not only
writing, extracting for, and editing the paper, but of correcting the press,
and he dares not remonstrate or demand better payment, as we live from week to
week, and he could not afford to be dismissed.
He is at the office all day, beginning at six in the morning to meet the
central intelligence, he only rushes home for his meals, and goes back to work
till twelve or one o'clock at night.
Even then he cannot sleep. I
hear him tossing about with the pain in his back that sitting at his desk
brings on, and his hands are so tired by writing, and with the heat, which has
been dreadful for the last few weeks, and has taken away all the appetite he
ever had. You would be shocked to see
him, he is so thin and altered; I cannot think how he is to continue this, but
he will not hear of my writing to Lady Travis Underwood. He is never angry, except when I try to
persuade him, and you never saw anything like his patience and gentleness to my
poor mother. She never did either, she
cannot understand it at all. At first
she thought he wanted to coax the confession out of her, and when she found
that it made no difference, she could not recover from her wonder--he, whom she
had deserted in his babyhood, and so cruelly injured in his manhood, to devote
himself to toiling for her sake, and never to speak harshly to her for one
moment. She knew I loved her, and she
had always been good to me, except when O'Leary forced her to be otherwise, but
his behaviour has done more to touch her heart than anything, and I am sure she
is, as Pere Duchamps says, a sincere penitent.
She is revived by the summer heat, and can sit under the stoop and enjoy
the sweet air of the lake; but she is very weak, and coughs dreadfully in the
morning, just when it is cooler, and my brother might get some sleep. She tries to be good and patient with us
both, and it really does soothe her when my brother can sit by her, and talk in
his cheerful droll way; but he can stay but a very short time. He has to rush back to his horrid stuffy
office, and then she frets after him and says, 'But what right have I to such a
son?' and she begins to cry and cough."
"Ah!" said
Clement, as Geraldine, unable to speak for tears, gave him the letter. "This is a furnace of real
heroism."
"Christian heroism, I
am sure," said Geraldine.
"Oh, my boy, I am proud of him.
He will be all the better for his brave experiment."
"Yes, he had an
instinct that it would be wholesome, besides the impelling cause. Real hardship is sound training."
"If it is not too
hard," said she.
"'Let not their
precious balms break my head,'" said Clement.
"I do not like that
pain in the back. Remember how he
dragged his limbs when first we had him at home, and how delicate he was up to thirteen—-only
eight years ago!"
"Probably it will not
last long enough to do him much harm."
"And how nobly
uncomplaining he is!"
"This has brought out
all the good we always trusted was in reserve."
"Better than Emilia's
experiment," sighed Geraldine.
For Emilia Vanderkist,
before her year was over, was at home, having broken down, and having spent
most of her holidays with Mrs. Peter Brown, the wife of Sir Ferdinand's
partner. She had come back, not looking
much the worse for her hospital experience, but with an immense deal to say of
the tyranny of the matron, the rudeness of the nurses to probationers, the
hardness and tedium of the work to which she had been put, and the hatefulness
of patients and of doctors.
Anna sympathized with all
the vehemence of her sisterly affection, and could hardly believe her aunts,
who told her that things must have changed in a wonderful manner since the time
of Angela's experiences, for she had been very happy in the same place, and
made no complaints.
Emilia had written to her
cousin Marilda to express her willingness to return so soon as the Travis
Underwoods should come home, and in the meantime she remained at Vale Leston,
not showing quite as much tolerance as might be expected of the somewhat narrow
way of life of her sisters. She did not
like being a lodger, as it were, in Sophy's bedroom; she found fault with the
parlour-maid's waiting, complained of the noise of the practising of the three
little sisters, and altogether reminded Geraldine of Alda in penance at home.
Major Harewood was detained
longer than he expected, for on arriving at Genoa he found that Menotti had
migrated, and had to follow him to his villa on the Apennines, where, in the
first place, he had to overcome the old man's suspicions that he was come to
recover Benista's means on behalf of his family, and then at last was assured
that the man had been dead long before 1870.
Still John Harewood thought it well to obtain positive evidence, and
pursued the quest to Innspruck, where Menotti averred that the man had been
left by his companions dying in the care of some Sisters of Charity.
So it proved. At Innspruck, the record of the burial of
Giovanni Benista, a native of Piedmont, was at length produced, dated the 12th
of February, 1868, happily and incontestably before Zoraya's marriage to Edgar
Underwood!
John Harewood made haste to
telegraph the tidings to Vale Leston and to Jonesville, and came home exultant,
having dispelled the cloud that had brooded over the family for nearly a year,
and given them freely to enjoy the wedding.
Would they do so the more or
the less for Emilia's announcement that she had a letter from Mr. Ferdinand
Brown, eldest son of Sir Ferdinand's partner, offering her marriage, and that
she had accepted him? He was, of
course, a rich man, but oh! how Emily, Annie, and Gerald had been wont to make
fun of him, and his parents.
"But, my dear
Nan," said she, "I shall be able to do much more good in that
way."
"Oh!"
"And really I cannot go
back to those intolerable backgammon evenings at Kensington Palace
Gardens."
Till the smooth temper of my
age might be
Like the high leaves upon
the holly tree.-—SOUTHEY.
The neighbourhood said that
nothing was ever done at Vale Leston according to the conventionalities, and
the Devereux wedding was an instance.
Lancelot had brought word
that Bishop Norman May had actually arrived from New Zealand for a half-year's
visit, bringing with him the younger missionary Leonard Ward, and that Dr.
May's happiness was unspeakable.
"A renewed youth, if he needed to have it renewed."
Clement and William Harewood
went over to see them, and returned greatly impressed, and resolved on
convoking the neighbourhood to be stirred in the cause of the Pacific
islands. At the same time, one of the
many letters from Lady Rotherwood about arrangements ended with—-"My
husband hopes you will be able to arrange for us to be introduced to your
connections of the May family, the Bishop, Mr. Ward, and the good old doctor of
whom we have heard so much."
"We must invite them
all to the wedding," said Mrs. Harewood, who, as still inhabiting the
Priory, would be the hostess.
"Certainly,"
returned William Harewood, "but I don't think Mr. Ward would come. He looks like an ancient hermit."
"The best way,"
said Mrs. Grinstead, "would be to finish up the wedding-day with a
missionary garden-party."
"Geraldine!" said
Lady Vanderkist from her sofa, in feeble accents of dismay; but Mrs. William
Harewood hardly heard, and did not notice.
"It would be the most
admirable plan. It would give people
something to do, and make a reason for having ever so many more."
"Baits cleverly
disposed," said William. "The
S.P.G. to attract Ward, Ward to attract the Marquis, and the Marquis to attract
the herd."
"Everybody throngs to
the extremest outskirts of a wedding," said Geraldine.
"They may have the
presents on view in the long room," said Wilmet.
"Provided they don't
have the list of them printed," said Geraldine. "Lance won't put them into the 'Pursuivant'; it is
disgusting!"
"So I have always
thought," said Robina; "but you hardly make allowances for the old
ladies who love to spell them out."
"The Marquis of
Rotherwood-—a gold-topped dressing-case; Miss Keren Happuch Tripp-—a
pincushion," said Geraldine.
"It is the idlest gossip, and should not be encouraged."
"And," added
Robina, "as we go out through the cloister there will happily be no
rice. Will has stopped it in the
churchyard."
"And fortunately we
have no school-boys to reckon with, except Adrian and Fely, who will be quite
amenable."
For Kester Harewood was in
India, and Edward on the Mediterranean; Adrian was at home, doing credit to
Miss Mohun, and so vehemently collecting stamps, that he was said to wish to
banish all his friends to the most remote corners of the earth to send them
home.
Francie's elder sisters
declined being bridesmaids, so that Phyllis and Mysie were the chief, and the
three young sisters, Wilmet, Alda, and Joan, with two little Underwoods and two
small Harewoods, all in white frocks and sashes, were to attend and make a
half-circle round the bride.
All took effect as had been
purposed, each party being equally desirous that it should be truly a Christian
wedding, such as might be a fit emblem of the great Marriage Feast, and bring a
blessing—-joyous and happy, yet avoiding the empty pomp and foolish mirth that
might destroy the higher thoughts.
How beautiful Vale Leston
church looked, decked with white roses, lilies, and myrtle! The bride, tall and stately in her flowing
veil and glistening satin train, had her own sweet individuality, not too
closely recalling the former little bride.
She came on her uncle Clement's arm, as most nearly representing a
father to her, and the marriage blessing was given by the majestic-looking
Bishop, with the two chief local clergy, Mr. William Harewood and Mr. Charles
Audley, taking part of the service. It
was a beautiful and impressive scene, and there was a great peace on all. It was good to see the intense bliss on
Ivinghoe's face as he led his bride down the aisle, and along the cloister; and
as they came into the drawing-room, after she had received an earnest kiss, and
"my pretty one" from his father, it was to Dr. May that he first led
her. Dr. May, his figure still erect,
his face bright and cheery, his brow entirely bare, and his soft white locks
flowing over his collar. He held out
his hands, "Ah, young things! You
are come for the old man's blessing!
Truly you have it, my lady fair.
You are fair indeed, as fair within as without. You have a great deal in the power of those
little hands, and you-—oh yes, both of you, believe, that a true, faithful,
loving, elevating wife is the blessing of all one's days, whether it be only
for a few years, or, as I trust and pray it may be with you, for a long—-long,
good, and prosperous life together."
The two young things bent
their heads, and he blessed them with his blessing of eighty years. Lord Rotherwood's eyes were full of tears,
as he said in a choked voice—-
"Thank you, sir,"
while Franceska murmured to Mysie—-
"I do like that he
should have been the first to call me 'my lady.'"
The luncheon included only
the two families, and the actual assistants at the wedding, and it was really
very merry. Lady Rotherwood did inspire
a little awe, but then Alda, sitting near, knew exactly how to talk to her, and
Alda, who, like Geraldine, had dressed herself in soft greys and whites, with
her delicate cheeks flushed with pleasure and triumph, looked as beautiful as
ever, and far outshone her twin, whose complexion and figure both had become
those of the portly housewife.
Meta, otherwise Mrs. Norman
May, had eyes as bright and lively as ever, though face and form had both grown
smaller, and she was more like a fairy godmother than the Titania she had been
in times of old. She had got into the
middle of all the varieties of children, dragged thither by Gertrude's Pearl
and Audrey, and was making them happy.
Ethel and Geraldine never
could come to the end of what they had to say to one another, except that Ethel
could but be delighted to make her friend know the brother of her early youth;
and show her the grave, earnest-looking man who had suffered so much, and whose
hair was as white as the doctor's, his face showing the sunburn of the tropics;
and the crow's-feet round his eyes, the sailor's habit of searching gaze. He did not speak much, but watched the merry
young groups as if they were a sort of comedy in his eyes.
They were very merry,
especially when the doctor had proposed the health of the bride, and her
brother, Sir Adrian, was called on to return thanks for her.
"Gentlemen and
ladies," he said, "no, I mean ladies and gentlemen,
I am very much obliged to
you all for the honour you have done my sister. I can tell Lord Ivinghoe she is a very good girl, and very nice,
and all that, when she is not cocky, and doesn't try to keep one in
order."
The speech was drowned in
laughter, and calls to Ivinghoe to mind what he was about, and beware of the
"new woman."
So the young couple were
seen off to spend their honeymoon in Scotland, and the rest of the party could
pair off to enjoy their respective friends, except that Mary and Sophy had to
exhibit the wedding presents to all and sundry of the visitors of all degrees
who began to flock in.
Seats were ranged on the
lawn, and when every one had had time to wonder at everything, from Lady
Rotherwood's set of emeralds, down to the choirboys' carved bracket, the
house-bell was rung, and all had to take their places on the lawn, fairly
shaded by house, cloister, and cedar tree, and facing the conservatory, whose
steps, with the terrace, formed a kind of platform. It is not needful to go through all, or how John Harewood, as
host, explained that they had thought that it would be well to allow their
guests to have the advantage of hearing their distinguished visitors tell of
their experiences. And so they did, the
Bishop pleading the cause of missions with his wonderful native eloquence, as
he stood by the chair where his father sat listening to him, as to a strain of
sweet music long out of reach. Then
Leonard Ward simply and bluntly told facts about the Pacific islands and
islanders, that set hearts throbbing, and impelled more than one young heart to
long to tread in the like course.
Then Lord Rotherwood thanked
and bungled as usual, so that Gustave Tanneguy would have a hard matter to
reduce what he called the "aristocratic tongue" to plain English, or
rather reporter's English. The listeners
were refreshed with tea, coffee, and lemonade, and there was a final service in
the church, which many gladly attended, and thus ended what had been a true
holiday.
Perhaps the cup was broken
here,
That Heaven's new wine might
show more clear.
E. B. BROWNING.
"No. 14, Huron St., Jonesville,
Ohio,
"July 19.
"MY DEAR MADAM,
"You were so kind as to
tell me to write to your ladyship if we were in any difficulty or distress, and
I have often longed to do so, but my brother always said that we had no right
to trespass on your goodness. Now,
however, things are at such a pass that I think you will hear of us with true
compassion. I do not know whether he
told you that we met my poor mother on board a steamer upon this lake. Her husband had been drowned in a wreck
while crossing, and she was reduced to great poverty, and had also, from
exposure, contracted disease of the lungs, which, the doctor said, must
terminate fatally in a few months. My
brother took charge of her, and has supported us ever since, now four months,
by working at the editorship of the Lacustrian Intelligencer, with such small
assistance as I could give by music lessons. It involved severe labour at desk
work and late hours, and his health has latterly given way, his back and lower
limbs being gradually affected, and last Monday even his hands proved
helpless. My poor mother broke another
blood-vessel on Sunday, and died ten minutes later. My brother desired me to sell his dear violin and his watch to
pay the funeral expenses, but after that I know not what we can do, as he is
quite helpless, and can hardly be left even for the sake of my small
earnings. Dear Lady Travis Underwood,
pray help us, as I know you and Sir Ferdinand love my poor dear generous
brother, and will not think him ungrateful for having declined your kindness
while he could support himself and us.
No doubt we shall get help from England, but not for some time, so I
dare to ask you.
"I remain, your humble
servant,
"LUDMILLA.
"P.S.-—Everybody knows
him as Jerry Wood. We are at Mr.
MacMahon's, 14 Huron Street."
This sad letter, in Lida's
neat pupil-teacher's hand, came enclosed within a longer letter from Marilda.
"Grand National Hotel,
Jonesville.
"July 23rd.
"MY DEAR GERALDINE,
"You will believe that
this letter from poor Lydia made Fernan telegraph at once to her, and hurry off
as soon as we could reach the train. We
found things quite as bad or worse than we expected. The poor children were living in two rooms in a wretched little
house of an Irish collier, who with his wife happily has been very kind to
them, and says that nothing could surpass their goodness to that poor mother of
theirs, who, she tells me, 'made a real Christian end' at last. I am sure she had need to do so.
"The burial was happily
over, conducted by the French priest, as the woman was a Roman Catholic to the
last. Gerald was sitting up by the
window, so changed that we should not have known him, except for the wonderful
likeness to Felix that has come upon him.
It seems that he had not only all the writing of that horrid paper to
do, but all the compositor's work, or whatever you call it. The people put upon him when they saw how
well he could do it, and he could not refuse because his mother needed comforts,
and he durst not get thrown out of employment.
He went on, first with aching back, then his legs got stiff and
staggering, but still he went on, and now it has gone into his hands; he cannot
hold a pen, and can hardly lift a tea-cup.
But he is so cheerful, almost merry.
The doctor says it is a paralytic affection, and that overwork has
developed the former disease from the old injury to the spine, which seemed to
have passed off, and there is intermittent fever about him too, a not uncommon
thing in these low-lying lake districts.
We have moved him to this Grand National Hotel, a big, half-inhabited
place, but better than the MacMahons' house, though the good woman cried over
him and Lydia at their farewells, and said she never should see such a young
gentleman and lady again with hearts so like ould Ireland. She would hardly take the money that Fernan
offered her; she said they had brought a blessing on her house with their
tender, loving ways.
"Fernan is gone to
Milwaukee to get further advice and more comforts for Gerald, and we mean, as
soon as he can be moved, to take him home with us, since the air of the Rockies
will revive him if anything will. This
place is fearfully hot and oppressive; the bay seems to shut out air from Lake
Erie, and I cannot bear to think what that poor boy must have gone through in
that close little den, with the printing-press humming and stamping away close
to him; but he says it is his native element, and that when he is better he
must go to Fiddler's Ranch. He sends
his love, and fears that you have missed his letters, but he could hardly write
them, and thought Lydia might alarm you.
He is a very dear boy, and I do hope we make him comfortable; he is so
thankful for the little we can do for him, and so patient. He tells me to give special love to Francie,
and say he is glad that Mona's game of chess was played out with a good
substitute for Ferdinand. These are his
words, which no doubt she will understand.
We think of moving next week, but much depends on the doctor's
verdict. My love too to the dear
Francie; she will be a great lady, quite beyond our sphere. Perhaps she may be able to give Emily some
amusements, though I fear they will only make her more discontented with our
humdrum ways. I never thought hospital
work would suit her. Gerald says there
is nothing like trying one's theories, and that having to exaggerate his own
has made him sick of a good deal of them, though not of all. Poor dear boy, I hope he will live to show
the benefits he says he has derived from this sad time. It shall not be for want of anything we can
do. He is as near our hearts as ever
his dear father was, and Lydia is a dear little girl.
"Your ever affectionate
cousin,
"MARY ALDA TRAVIS UNDERWOOD."
It was a great shock, though
mitigated by hearing that Gerald was in such hands as those of his first
friend, and kind Marilda; but there was great surprise at no notice being taken
of the tidings that secured Gerald's position.
John Harewood had telegraphed them, but it only now fully broke on him
that he ought to have sent them to Jerry Wood instead of Gerald Underwood, so
that Italian telegrams were not to blame.
On one thing Clement
ventured, being nearly certain that the reaction of Gerald's mind would not
include the preventing of all Penbeacon works.
He encouraged young Bramshaw to set about the plans so as to make the
washings as innocuous as possible, being persuaded that this was the only way
to prevent more obnoxious erections on ground just beyond. Moreover, this gave the lovers hope, and
Alda had, under Clement's persuasion and rebukes, withdrawn her opposition to
the engagement, so that Sophy was free to wander about Penbeacon with her
Philip, and help to set up his theodolite, and hold the end of his
measuring-tape.
Her mother could not well
stand out on the score of unequal birth, when Mr. Ferdinand Brown, whose father
had swept out the office, came down and was accepted with calm civility, it
could not be called delight, even by Emilia.
But he was a worthy young
man, and well educated, and it was for his sake that Clement and Geraldine had
stayed on at the Priory, giving the Harewoods and their curates holidays in
turn; though even this amount of work was enough to leave with Clement a dread
conviction that his full share of St. Matthew's would be fatal to him, insomuch
that he had written to the patron, the Bishop of Albertstown, seriously to
propose resignation.
Fresh letters arrived from America,
the first slightly more cheery, but the next was dated from Violinia, to the
general surprise, and it was very short, from Sir Ferdinand.
"DEAR CLEMENT,
"We have the telegram,
a relief to the poor lad's mind, but he has not spoken much since. It came just as we were starting in an
invalid Pullman, fitted with every comfort; but the jars of these lines are
unavoidable and unspeakable, and he suffered so terribly, as well as so
patiently, that we had to give up our intention of taking him to Underwood. The one thing he begged for was that we
would take him to Fiddler's Ranch. You
know there is a mission-station here, so we have him in the clergyman's house,
and the place is so advanced that he has every comfort. But I doubt whether the dear boy will ever
move again. He is perfectly helpless,
but his brain quite clear, and his spirits good.
"Ever yours,
"F. A. TRAVIS
UNDERWOOD."
There followed a long
letter, dictated by Gerald himself, and partly written by Lida, partly by
Marilda, at several different times.
"DEAREST, MOST DEAREST
CHERIE, AND ALL—-
"I should like to be
able to sign my name to my thanks to all, if only to feel that I have a name,
and one so honoured, but these fingers of mine will not obey me, so you must
take the will for the deed, and believe that you have made me very happy, and
completed all I could wish. I fear you
never will believe how jolly it is to lie here, the pain all gone, since having
done with that terrific train, and the three tenderest, most watchful of slaves
always round me, while my Cherie is spared the sight of the wreck.—-(L.)
"You know that good old
Fernan established a missionary station here, building a church, and getting
the ground consecrated where my father lies.
I can just see the top of the cross, and there he promises that I shall
lie. You will be able to put my name in
the cloister under my father's, as no impostor.
"Don't grieve, my
Cherie, it is best as it is; my brains were full of more notions than you ever
quite guessed, and of which I have seen the seamy side out here, though there
is much that I should feel bound to work out, and that might have grieved
you. I was not tough enough for the
discipline that was needed to strike the balance. (He is thinking aloud, dear fellow.-—M. A.) I am afraid I have often vexed you in my
crudeness and conceit, but I know you forgive.
I am very thankful for this year, and for the way in which my poor
mother was given into my hands at last.
Fernan has helped me to make a short will, to save confusion and
difficulty.
I have left everything to
Clement, knowing that you and he will provide for all. Fernan and Marilda will care for Lida. (That we will.-—M. A.) I cannot leave her to be a tax on Vale
Leston. Give my books and MSS. to
Dolores, and please be kind to her. My
violin, which Fernan redeemed for me, the eponym (How do you spell it?-—M. A.),
by the way, of this place, my father's own fiddle, give to Lance for his pretty
Ariel; Anna, my good sister, should have my music, which will be a memory of
happy evenings. Emmie may like the
portfolio of drawings that I made for the mission-house; dear old Sibby the
photograph in my room of the 'Ecce Homo.'
I have it in my eye now.-—(M. A.)
"Everything is such a
comfort, Fernan and Marilda are the best of nurses and helpers, and I mourn for
the folly that chaffed about them and boredom.
Tell Emmie so. Fernan has made
this place a little oasis round my father's grave, and his parson, who has a
mission among the remains of the Sioux, is with me every other day, and does
all that Clement could desire for me.
So do-—do believe that it is all for the best, dear people.-—(L.)
"One thing good is,
that I shall not bring any bad blood into the Underwood inheritance. By the bye, tell them-—(Continued by
Marilda) Mr. Gracchus Van --— suddenly arrived here, greatly shocked at
Gerald's state, and actually wanting to marry Lydia on the spot—-which of
course she declined. But Fernan was
pleased with him, and he told him he had never met any one to hold a candle to
'Jerry Wood,' so 'smart' and 'chipper,' as he saw at first, and then cheerful,
good-humoured, and kindly, whatever happened.
None of your Britisher's airs, but ready to make the best of any
fixings. I don't think dear Gerald
meant me to tell all this, but think of the difference from the fastidious fine
gentleman he used to be! He is dozing
now, I fear he is getting weaker; but he is ever so sweet and good, and I quite
long to beg his pardon for having called him your spoilt boy. Mr. Fraser, the clergyman here, is very much
struck with him, and Fernan remembers the time when he baptized him as he lay
unconscious. Dear Cherry, it will
grieve you, but I think there will be comfort in the grief.
"Your affectionate
cousin,
"M. A.
T. U."
There were long letters to
Dolores, dictated to Lida-—all in the same spirit. One of them said, "Go bravely on, my Dolores; though we do
not live together in our bicycle-roving castles. You will do good work if you uphold the glory of God and the
improvement of man, all through creation and science. I should like to talk it over with you. Things are plainer to me than in the days of my inexperience and
cocksureness. Short as the time was, in
months, it showed me much more, especially my own inefficiency to deal with the
great problems of these times, perhaps of all times. Remember this, but go on-—if we do but put grains of sand into
the great Edifice."
More was written, but these
were the most memorable extracts, before the letter that told that something
like a fresh stroke had come, and taken away the power of distinct speech, then
that the throat had failed, and there was only one foreboding more to be told,
and soon realized. The young ardent
spirit, trained by so short a discipline, had passed away in peace. And they laid him beside his father, whose
better spirit he had unconsciously evoked, and whom he had loved so
deeply. The doctors said that the real
cause of his death had been the Indian bullet, inflicting injury on the spine,
which the elasticity of youth had for the time overcome, but which manifested
itself again under overstrain. Ferdinand, when he awoke the child back to life, had given him
years not spent in vain for himself or for others.
It would have been utter
desolation to the little sister save for the motherly tenderness of Marilda,
who took her to the home in the Rocky Mountains, and would fain have adopted
her, but that Lida, acting perhaps on advice from her brother, only begged to
be so educated as to fit her to be independent, and to be given a start in
life. It would be shown in a year or
two whether her vocation should be musical or scholastic.
Gerald had his meed of tears
at home, but not bitter ones. Nay,
those that had the most quality of bitterness were Emilia's, shed in secret
lest interpretations should be put on those that had the quality of remorse, as
she recollected the high aspirations that had ended so differently in the two
cousins.
Dolores dried hers, to feel
a consecration on her studies and her labours as she grew forward to the
fulfilment of her purpose of being a leading woman in the instruction and
formation of young minds, working all the better for the inspiriting words and
example, and the more gently and sympathizingly for the love that was laid up
in her heart.
She and his
"Cherie" came to have a great affection and understanding of each other,
and discussed what Dolores called "ethics" with warm interest, the
elder lady bringing the old and sacred lights to bear on the newer theories.
Clement was the undoubted
owner of Vale Leston, and the John Harewoods had decided on leaving the Priory. Just at the same time, when the acceptance
of Clement's resignation of St. Matthew's had arrived, William Harewood was
offered a canonry at Minsterham, with the headship of the theological college. The canonry had been the summit of his
ambition when a boy, and there was no one fitter than he for the care of a
theological college. He was
pre-eminently a scholar, and his fifteen years of parish experience made good
preparation for training young clergy.
So Clement could decide on
presenting himself to the living of Vale Leston, with a staff of curates, and
Geraldine to be his home sister, making the Priory a resting-place for
overworked people, whether clergy, governesses, or poor, or mission-folk at
home. It was a trust to be kept for
Lancelot and his boy, who would make the summer home of the family there, to
Dr. May's great content. It was a
peaceful home, and to every one's surprise, Alda decided to remain at hand,
chiefly to keep her boy under his uncle's influence, which thus far was keeping
him well in hand, and as he would go to a public school with little Felix,
might be prolonged.
It was a comfort and
encouragement to feel that hereditary dangers and temperament could be subdued
and conquered in Gerald; and if the sins of parents had their consequence in
the children, the scourge might become a palm.
When the commemorative brass in the cloister was to be put up, Geraldine
said—-
"I should like to put
'Rejoice with me, for I have found the piece that was lost.'"
"He never was
lost."
"Oh no, no, my dear
boy. But his work was so like the
finding the stained, tarnished piece of silver, cast aside, defaced,
dust-marked, and by simple duty and affection bringing her back."
"I see! Let us have the inscription in Greek. Then none can apply it to himself! It was a wonderful work, and it is strange
that having fulfilled it, he who brought the child from his father's arms
should lay him to his rest beside his father."
The End of this Project
Gutenberg Etext of The Long Vacation, by Charlotte M. Yonge.